
THE RIGHTS OF MAN
by Thomas
Paine
1792
PART THE FIRST BEING AN ANSWER TO
MR. BURKE'S ATTACK ON THE FRENCH REVOLUTION
George
Washington
PRESIDENT
OF THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA
SIR,
I present
you a small treatise in defence of those principles of freedom which your
exemplary virtue hath so eminently contributed to establish. That the Rights of
Man may become as universal as your benevolence can wish, and that you may
enjoy the happiness of seeing the New World regenerate the Old, is the prayer
of
SIR,
Your much
obliged, and Obedient humble Servant,
THOMAS
PAINE
The Author's Preface to the English
Edition
From the
part Mr. Burke took in the American Revolution, it was natural that I should
consider him a friend to mankind; and as our acquaintance commenced on that
ground, it would have been more agreeable to me to have had cause to continue
in that opinion than to change it.
At the time
Mr. Burke made his violent speech last winter in the English Parliament against
the French Revolution and the National Assembly, I was in Paris, and had
written to him but a short time before to inform him how prosperously matters
were going on. Soon after this I saw his advertisement of the Pamphlet he
intended to publish: As the attack was to be made in a language but little
studied, and less understood in France, and as everything suffers by
translation, I promised some of the friends of the Revolution in that country
that whenever Mr. Burke's Pamphlet came forth, I would answer it. This appeared
to me the more necessary to be done, when I saw the flagrant misrepresentations
which Mr. Burke's Pamphlet contains; and that while it is an outrageous abuse
on the French Revolution, and the principles of Liberty, it is an imposition on
the rest of the world.
I am the
more astonished and disappointed at this conduct in Mr. Burke, as (from the
circumstances I am going to mention) I had formed other expectations.
I had seen
enough of the miseries of war, to wish it might never more have existence in
the world, and that some other mode might be found out to settle the
differences that should occasionally arise in the neighbourhood of nations.
This certainly might be done if Courts were disposed to set honesty about it,
or if countries were enlightened enough not to be made the dupes of Courts. The
people of America had been bred up in the same prejudices against France, which
at that time characterised the people of England; but experience and an
acquaintance with the French Nation have most effectually shown to the
Americans the falsehood of those prejudices; and I do not believe that a more
cordial and confidential intercourse exists between any two countries than
between America and France.
When I came
to France, in the spring of 1787, the Archbishop of Thoulouse was then
Minister, and at that time highly esteemed. I became much acquainted with the
private Secretary of that Minister, a man of an enlarged benevolent heart; and
found that his sentiments and my own perfectly agreed with respect to the
madness of war, and the wretched impolicy of two nations, like England and
France, continually worrying each other, to no other end than that of a mutual
increase of burdens and taxes. That I might be assured I had not misunderstood
him, nor he me, I put the substance of our opinions into writing and sent it to
him; subjoining a request, that if I should see among the people of England,
any disposition to cultivate a better understanding between the two nations than
had hitherto prevailed, how far I might be authorised to say that the same
disposition prevailed on the part of France? He answered me by letter in the
most unreserved manner, and that not for himself only, but for the Minister,
with whose knowledge the letter was declared to be written.
I put this
letter into the, hands of Mr. Burke almost three years ago, and left it with
him, where it still remains; hoping, and at the same time naturally expecting,
from the opinion I had conceived of him, that he would find some opportunity of
making good use of it, for the purpose of removing those errors and prejudices
which two neighbouring nations, from the want of knowing each other, had
entertained, to the injury of both.
When the
French Revolution broke out, it certainly afforded to Mr. Burke an opportunity
of doing some good, had he been disposed to it; instead of which, no sooner did
he see the old prejudices wearing away, than he immediately began sowing the
seeds of a new inveteracy, as if he were afraid that England and France would
cease to be enemies. That there are men in all countries who get their living
by war, and by keeping up the quarrels of Nations, is as shocking as it is
true; but when those who are concerned in the government of a country, make it
their study to sow discord and cultivate prejudices between Nations, it becomes
the more unpardonable.
With
respect to a paragraph in this work alluding to Mr. Burke's having a pension,
the report has been some time in circulation, at least two months; and as a
person is often the last to hear what concerns him the most to know, I have
mentioned it, that Mr. Burke may have an opportunity of contradicting the
rumour, if he thinks proper.
THOMAS PAINE FRENCH EDITION
The
Author's Preface to the French Edition
The
astonishment which the French Revolution has caused throughout Europe should be
considered from two different points of view: first as it affects foreign
peoples, secondly as it affects their governments.
The cause
of the French people is that of all Europe, or rather of the whole world; but
the governments of all those countries are by no means favorable to it. It is
important that we should never lose sight of this distinction. We must not
confuse the peoples with their governments; especially not the English people
with its government.
The
government of England is no friend of the revolution of France. Of this we have
sufficient proofs in the thanks given by that weak and witless person, the
Elector of Hanover, sometimes called the King of England, to Mr. Burke for the
insults heaped on it in his book, and in the malevolent comments of the English
Minister, Pitt, in his speeches in Parliament.
In spite of
the professions of sincerest friendship found in the official correspondence of
the English government with that of France, its conduct gives the lie to all
its declarations, and shows us clearly that it is not a court to be trusted,
but an insane court, plunging in all the quarrels and intrigues of Europe, in
quest of a war to satisfy its folly and countenance its extravagance.
The English
nation, on the contrary, is very favorably disposed towards the French
Revolution, and to the progress of liberty in the whole world; and this feeling
will become more general in England as the intrigues and artifices of its
government are better known, and the principles of the revolution better
understood. The French should know that most English newspapers are directly in
the pay of government, or, if indirectly connected with it, always under its
orders; and that those papers constantly distort and attack the revolution in
France in order to deceive the nation. But, as it is impossible long to prevent
the prevalence of truth, the daily falsehoods of those papers no longer have
the desired effect.
To be
convinced that the voice of truth has been stifled in England, the world needs
only to be told that the government regards and prosecutes as a libel that
which it should protect.*[1] This outrage on morality is called law, and judges
are found wicked enough to inflict penalties on truth.
The English
government presents, just now, a curious phenomenon. Seeing that the French and
English nations are getting rid of the prejudices and false notions formerly
entertained against each other, and which have cost them so much money, that
government seems to be placarding its need of a foe; for unless it finds one
somewhere, no pretext exists for the enormous revenue and taxation now deemed
necessary.
Therefore
it seeks in Russia the enemy it has lost in France, and appears to say to the
universe, or to say to itself. "If nobody will be so kind as to become my
foe, I shall need no more fleets nor armies, and shall be forced to reduce my
taxes. The American war enabled me to double the taxes; the Dutch business to
add more; the Nootka humbug gave me a pretext for raising three millions
sterling more; but unless I can make an enemy of Russia the harvest from wars
will end. I was the first to incite Turk against Russian, and now I hope to
reap a fresh crop of taxes."
If the
miseries of war, and the flood of evils it spreads over a country, did not
check all inclination to mirth, and turn laughter into grief, the frantic
conduct of the government of England would only excite ridicule. But it is
impossible to banish from one's mind the images of suffering which the
contemplation of such vicious policy presents. To reason with governments, as
they have existed for ages, is to argue with brutes. It is only from the
nations themselves that reforms can be expected. There ought not now to exist
any doubt that the peoples of France, England, and America, enlightened and
enlightening each other, shall henceforth be able, not merely to give the world
an example of good government, but by their united influence enforce its practice.
(Translated
from the French)
Rights of Man
Among the
incivilities by which nations or individuals provoke and irritate each other,
Mr. Burke's pamphlet on the French Revolution is an extraordinary instance.
Neither the People of France, nor the National Assembly, were troubling
themselves about the affairs of England, or the English Parliament; and that
Mr. Burke should commence an unprovoked attack upon them, both in Parliament
and in public, is a conduct that cannot be pardoned on the score of manners,
nor justified on that of policy.
There is
scarcely an epithet of abuse to be found in the English language, with which
Mr. Burke has not loaded the French Nation and the National Assembly.
Everything which rancour, prejudice, ignorance or knowledge could suggest, is
poured forth in the copious fury of near four hundred pages. In the strain and
on the plan Mr. Burke was writing, he might have written on to as many
thousands. When the tongue or the pen is let loose in a frenzy of passion, it
is the man, and not the subject, that becomes exhausted.
Hitherto
Mr. Burke has been mistaken and disappointed in the opinions he had formed of
the affairs of France; but such is the ingenuity of his hope, or the malignancy
of his despair, that it furnishes him with new pretences to go on. There was a
time when it was impossible to make Mr. Burke believe there would be any
Revolution in France. His opinion then was, that the French had neither spirit
to undertake it nor fortitude to support it; and now that there is one, he
seeks an escape by condemning it.
Not
sufficiently content with abusing the National Assembly, a great part of his
work is taken up with abusing Dr. Price (one of the best-hearted men that
lives) and the two societies in England known by the name of the Revolution
Society and the Society for Constitutional Information.
Dr. Price
had preached a sermon on the 4th of November, 1789, being the anniversary of
what is called in England the Revolution, which took place 1688. Mr. Burke,
speaking of this sermon, says: "The political Divine proceeds dogmatically
to assert, that by the principles of the Revolution, the people of England have
acquired three fundamental rights:
1. To choose our own governors.
2. To cashier them for misconduct.
3. To frame a government for ourselves."
Dr. Price
does not say that the right to do these things exists in this or in that
person, or in this or in that description of persons, but that it exists in the
whole; that it is a right resident in the nation. Mr. Burke, on the contrary,
denies that such a right exists in the nation, either in whole or in part, or
that it exists anywhere; and, what is still more strange and marvellous, he
says: "that the people of England utterly disclaim such a right, and that
they will resist the practical assertion of it with their lives and
fortunes." That men should take up arms and spend their lives and
fortunes, not to maintain their rights, but to maintain they have not rights,
is an entirely new species of discovery, and suited to the paradoxical genius
of Mr. Burke.
The method
which Mr. Burke takes to prove that the people of England have no such rights,
and that such rights do not now exist in the nation, either in whole or in
part, or anywhere at all, is of the same marvellous and monstrous kind with
what he has already said; for his arguments are that the persons, or the
generation of persons, in whom they did exist, are dead, and with them the
right is dead also. To prove this, he quotes a declaration made by Parliament
about a hundred years ago, to William and Mary, in these words: "The Lords
Spiritual and Temporal, and Commons, do, in the name of the people
aforesaid" (meaning the people of England then living) "most humbly
and faithfully submit themselves, their heirs and posterities, for EVER."
He quotes a clause of another Act of Parliament made in the same reign, the
terms of which he says, "bind us" (meaning the people of their day),
"our heirs and our posterity, to them, their heirs and posterity, to the
end of time."
Mr. Burke
conceives his point sufficiently established by producing those clauses, which
he enforces by saying that they exclude the right of the nation for ever. And
not yet content with making such declarations, repeated over and over again, he
farther says, "that if the people of England possessed such a right before
the Revolution" (which he acknowledges to have been the case, not only in
England, but throughout Europe, at an early period), "yet that the English
Nation did, at the time of the Revolution, most solemnly renounce and abdicate
it, for themselves, and for all their posterity, for ever."
As Mr.
Burke occasionally applies the poison drawn from his horrid principles, not
only to the English nation, but to the French Revolution and the National Assembly,
and charges that august, illuminated and illuminating body of men with the
epithet of usurpers, I shall, sans ceremonie, place another system of
principles in opposition to his.
The English
Parliament of 1688 did a certain thing, which, for themselves and their
constituents, they had a right to do, and which it appeared right should be
done. But, in addition to this right, which they possessed by delegation, they
set up another right by assumption, that of binding and controlling posterity
to the end of time. The case, therefore, divides itself into two parts; the
right which they possessed by delegation, and the right which they set up by
assumption. The first is admitted; but with respect to the second, I reply-
There never
did, there never will, and there never can, exist a Parliament, or any
description of men, or any generation of men, in any country, possessed of the
right or the power of binding and controlling posterity to the "end of
time," or of commanding for ever how the world shall be governed, or who
shall govern it; and therefore all such clauses, acts or declarations by which
the makers of them attempt to do what they have neither the right nor the power
to do, nor the power to execute, are in themselves null and void. Every age and
generation must be as free to act for itself in all cases as the age and
generations which preceded it. The vanity and presumption of governing beyond
the grave is the most ridiculous and insolent of all tyrannies. Man has no
property in man; neither has any generation a property in the generations which
are to follow. The Parliament or the people of 1688, or of any other period,
had no more right to dispose of the people of the present day, or to bind or to
control them in any shape whatever, than the parliament or the people of the
present day have to dispose of, bind or control those who are to live a hundred
or a thousand years hence. Every generation is, and must be, competent to all
the purposes which its occasions require. It is the living, and not the dead,
that are to be accommodated. When man ceases to be, his power and his wants
cease with him; and having no longer any participation in the concerns of this
world, he has no longer any authority in directing who shall be its governors,
or how its government shall be organised, or how administered.
I am not
contending for nor against any form of government, nor for nor against any
party, here or elsewhere. That which a whole nation chooses to do it has a
right to do. Mr. Burke says, No. Where, then, does the right exist? I am
contending for the rights of the living, and against their being willed away
and controlled and contracted for by the manuscript assumed authority of the
dead, and Mr. Burke is contending for the authority of the dead over the rights
and freedom of the living. There was a time when kings disposed of their crowns
by will upon their death-beds, and consigned the people, like beasts of the
field, to whatever successor they appointed. This is now so exploded as
scarcely to be remembered, and so monstrous as hardly to be believed. But the
Parliamentary clauses upon which Mr. Burke builds his political church are of
the same nature.
The laws of
every country must be analogous to some common principle. In England no parent
or master, nor all the authority of Parliament, omnipotent as it has called
itself, can bind or control the personal freedom even of an individual beyond
the age of twenty-one years. On what ground of right, then, could the
Parliament of 1688, or any other Parliament, bind all posterity for ever?
Those who
have quitted the world, and those who have not yet arrived at it, are as remote
from each other as the utmost stretch of mortal imagination can conceive. What
possible obligation, then, can exist between them- what rule or principle can
be laid down that of two nonentities, the one out of existence and the other
not in, and who never can meet in this world, the one should control the other
to the end of time?
In England
it is said that money cannot be taken out of the pockets of the people without
their consent. But who authorised, or who could authorise, the Parliament of
1688 to control and take away the freedom of posterity (who were not in
existence to give or to withhold their consent) and limit and confine their right
of acting in certain cases for ever?
A greater
absurdity cannot present itself to the understanding of man than what Mr. Burke
offers to his readers. He tells them, and he tells the world to come, that a
certain body of men who existed a hundred years ago made a law, and that there
does not exist in the nation, nor ever will, nor ever can, a power to alter it.
Under how many subtilties or absurdities has the divine right to govern been
imposed on the credulity of mankind? Mr. Burke has discovered a new one, and he
has shortened his journey to Rome by appealing to the power of this infallible
Parliament of former days, and he produces what it has done as of divine
authority, for that power must certainly be more than human which no human
power to the end of time can alter.
But Mr.
Burke has done some service- not to his cause, but to his country- by bringing
those clauses into public view. They serve to demonstrate how necessary it is
at all times to watch against the attempted encroachment of power, and to
prevent its running to excess. It is somewhat extraordinary that the offence
for which James II. was expelled, that of setting up power by assumption,
should be re-acted, under another shape and form, by the Parliament that
expelled him. It shows that the Rights of Man were but imperfectly understood
at the Revolution, for certain it is that the right which that Parliament set
up by assumption (for by the delegation it had not, and could not have it,
because none could give it) over the persons and freedom of posterity for ever
was of the same tyrannical unfounded kind which James attempted to set up over
the Parliament and the nation, and for which he was expelled. The only
difference is (for in principle they differ not) that the one was an usurper over
living, and the other over the unborn; and as the one has no better authority
to stand upon than the other, both of them must be equally null and void, and
of no effect.
From what,
or from whence, does Mr. Burke prove the right of any human power to bind
posterity for ever? He has produced his clauses, but he must produce also his
proofs that such a right existed, and show how it existed. If it ever existed
it must now exist, for whatever appertains to the nature of man cannot be
annihilated by man. It is the nature of man to die, and he will continue to die
as long as he continues to be born. But Mr. Burke has set up a sort of
political Adam, in whom all posterity are bound for ever. He must, therefore,
prove that his Adam possessed such a power, or such a right.
The weaker
any cord is, the less will it bear to be stretched, and the worse is the policy
to stretch it, unless it is intended to break it. Had anyone proposed the
overthrow of Mr. Burke's positions, he would have proceeded as Mr. Burke has
done. He would have magnified the authorities, on purpose to have called the
right of them into question; and the instant the question of right was started,
the authorities must have been given up.
It requires
but a very small glance of thought to perceive that although laws made in one
generation often continue in force through succeeding generations, yet they
continue to derive their force from the consent of the living. A law not
repealed continues in force, not because it cannot be repealed, but because it
is not repealed; and the non-repealing passes for consent.
But Mr.
Burke's clauses have not even this qualification in their favour. They become
null, by attempting to become immortal. The nature of them precludes consent.
They destroy the right which they might have, by grounding it on a right which
they cannot have. Immortal power is not a human right, and therefore cannot be
a right of Parliament. The Parliament of 1688 might as well have passed an act
to have authorised themselves to live for ever, as to make their authority live
for ever. All, therefore, that can be said of those clauses is that they are a
formality of words, of as much import as if those who used them had addressed a
congratulation to themselves, and in the oriental style of antiquity had said:
O Parliament, live for ever!
The
circumstances of the world are continually changing, and the opinions of men
change also; and as government is for the living, and not for the dead, it is
the living only that has any right in it. That which may be thought right and
found convenient in one age may be thought wrong and found inconvenient in
another. In such cases, who is to decide, the living or the dead?
As almost
one hundred pages of Mr. Burke's book are employed upon these clauses, it will
consequently follow that if the clauses themselves, so far as they set up an
assumed usurped dominion over posterity for ever, are unauthoritative, and in
their nature null and void; that all his voluminous inferences, and declamation
drawn therefrom, or founded thereon, are null and void also; and on this ground
I rest the matter.
We now come
more particularly to the affairs of France. Mr. Burke's book has the appearance
of being written as instruction to the French nation; but if I may permit
myself the use of an extravagant metaphor, suited to the extravagance of the
case, it is darkness attempting to illuminate light.
While I am
writing this there are accidentally before me some proposals for a declaration
of rights by the Marquis de la Fayette (I ask his pardon for using his former
address, and do it only for distinction's sake) to the National Assembly, on
the 11th of July, 1789, three days before the taking of the Bastille, and I
cannot but remark with astonishment how opposite the sources are from which
that gentleman and Mr. Burke draw their principles. Instead of referring to
musty records and mouldy parchments to prove that the rights of the living are
lost, "renounced and abdicated for ever," by those who are now no
more, as Mr. Burke has done, M. de la Fayette applies to the living world, and
emphatically says: "Call to mind the sentiments which nature has engraved
on the heart of every citizen, and which take a new force when they are solemnly
recognised by all:- For a nation to love liberty, it is sufficient that she
knows it; and to be free, it is sufficient that she wills it." How dry,
barren, and obscure is the source from which Mr. Burke labors! and how
ineffectual, though gay with flowers, are all his declamation and his arguments
compared with these clear, concise, and soul-animating sentiments! Few and
short as they are, they lead on to a vast field of generous and manly thinking,
and do not finish, like Mr. Burke's periods, with music in the ear, and nothing
in the heart.
As I have
introduced M. de la Fayette, I will take the liberty of adding an anecdote
respecting his farewell address to the Congress of America in 1783, and which
occurred fresh to my mind, when I saw Mr. Burke's thundering attack on the
French Revolution. M. de la Fayette went to America at the early period of the
war, and continued a volunteer in her service to the end. His conduct through
the whole of that enterprise is one of the most extraordinary that is to be
found in the history of a young man, scarcely twenty years of age. Situated in
a country that was like the lap of sensual pleasure, and with the means of
enjoying it, how few are there to be found who would exchange such a scene for
the woods and wildernesses of America, and pass the flowery years of youth in
unprofitable danger and hardship! but such is the fact. When the war ended, and
he was on the point of taking his final departure, he presented himself to
Congress, and contemplating in his affectionate farewell the Revolution he had
seen, expressed himself in these words: "May this great monument raised to
liberty serve as a lesson to the oppressor, and an example to the
oppressed!" When this address came to the hands of Dr. Franklin, who was
then in France, he applied to Count Vergennes to have it inserted in the French
Gazette, but never could obtain his consent. The fact was that Count Vergennes
was an aristocratical despot at home, and dreaded the example of the American
Revolution in France, as certain other persons now dread the example of the
French Revolution in England, and Mr. Burke's tribute of fear (for in this
light his book must be considered) runs parallel with Count Vergennes' refusal.
But to return more particularly to his work.
"We
have seen," says Mr. Burke, "the French rebel against a mild and
lawful monarch, with more fury, outrage, and insult, than any people has been
known to rise against the most illegal usurper, or the most sanguinary
tyrant." This is one among a thousand other instances, in which Mr. Burke
shows that he is ignorant of the springs and principles of the French
Revolution.
It was not
against Louis XVI. but against the despotic principles of the Government, that
the nation revolted. These principles had not their origin in him, but in the
original establishment, many centuries back: and they were become too deeply
rooted to be removed, and the Augean stables of parasites and plunderers too
abominably filthy to be cleansed by anything short of a complete and universal
Revolution. When it becomes necessary to do anything, the whole heart and soul
should go into the measure, or not attempt it. That crisis was then arrived,
and there remained no choice but to act with determined vigor, or not to act at
all. The king was known to be the friend of the nation, and this circumstance
was favorable to the enterprise. Perhaps no man bred up in the style of an
absolute king, ever possessed a heart so little disposed to the exercise of
that species of power as the present King of France. But the principles of the
Government itself still remained the same. The Monarch and the Monarchy were
distinct and separate things; and it was against the established despotism of
the latter, and not against the person or principles of the former, that the revolt
commenced, and the Revolution has been carried.
Mr. Burke
does not attend to the distinction between men and principles, and, therefore,
he does not see that a revolt may take place against the despotism of the
latter, while there lies no charge of despotism against the former.
The natural
moderation of Louis XVI. contributed nothing to alter the hereditary despotism
of the monarchy. All the tyrannies of former reigns, acted under that
hereditary despotism, were still liable to be revived in the hands of a
successor. It was not the respite of a reign that would satisfy France,
enlightened as she was then become. A casual discontinuance of the practice of
despotism, is not a discontinuance of its principles: the former depends on the
virtue of the individual who is in immediate possession of the power; the
latter, on the virtue and fortitude of the nation. In the case of Charles I.
and James II. of England, the revolt was against the personal despotism of the
men; whereas in France, it was against the hereditary despotism of the
established Government. But men who can consign over the rights of posterity
for ever on the authority of a mouldy parchment, like Mr. Burke, are not
qualified to judge of this Revolution. It takes in a field too vast for their
views to explore, and proceeds with a mightiness of reason they cannot keep
pace with.
But there
are many points of view in which this Revolution may be considered. When
despotism has established itself for ages in a country, as in France, it is not
in the person of the king only that it resides. It has the appearance of being
so in show, and in nominal authority; but it is not so in practice and in fact.
It has its standard everywhere. Every office and department has its despotism,
founded upon custom and usage. Every place has its Bastille, and every Bastille
its despot. The original hereditary despotism resident in the person of the
king, divides and sub-divides itself into a thousand shapes and forms, till at
last the whole of it is acted by deputation. This was the case in France; and
against this species of despotism, proceeding on through an endless labyrinth
of office till the source of it is scarcely perceptible, there is no mode of
redress. It strengthens itself by assuming the appearance of duty, and
tyrannies under the pretence of obeying.
When a man
reflects on the condition which France was in from the nature of her
government, he will see other causes for revolt than those which immediately
connect themselves with the person or character of Louis XVI. There were, if I
may so express it, a thousand despotisms to be reformed in France, which had
grown up under the hereditary despotism of the monarchy, and became so rooted
as to be in a great measure independent of it. Between the Monarchy, the Parliament,
and the Church there was a rivalship of despotism; besides the feudal despotism
operating locally, and the ministerial despotism operating everywhere. But Mr.
Burke, by considering the king as the only possible object of a revolt, speaks
as if France was a village, in which everything that passed must be known to
its commanding officer, and no oppression could be acted but what he could
immediately control. Mr. Burke might have been in the Bastille his whole life,
as well under Louis XVI. as Louis XIV., and neither the one nor the other have
known that such a man as Burke existed. The despotic principles of the
government were the same in both reigns, though the dispositions of the men
were as remote as tyranny and benevolence.
What Mr.
Burke considers as a reproach to the French Revolution (that of bringing it
forward under a reign more mild than the preceding ones) is one of its highest
honors. The Revolutions that have taken place in other European countries, have
been excited by personal hatred. The rage was against the man, and he became
the victim. But, in the instance of France we see a Revolution generated in the
rational contemplation of the Rights of Man, and distinguishing from the
beginning between persons and principles.
But Mr.
Burke appears to have no idea of principles when he is contemplating
Governments. "Ten years ago," says he, "I could have felicitated
France on her having a Government, without inquiring what the nature of that
Government was, or how it was administered." Is this the language of a
rational man? Is it the language of a heart feeling as it ought to feel for the
rights and happiness of the human race? On this ground, Mr. Burke must
compliment all the Governments in the world, while the victims who suffer under
them, whether sold into slavery, or tortured out of existence, are wholly
forgotten. It is power, and not principles, that Mr. Burke venerates; and under
this abominable depravity he is disqualified to judge between them. Thus much
for his opinion as to the occasions of the French Revolution. I now proceed to
other considerations.
I know a
place in America called Point-no-Point, because as you proceed along the shore,
gay and flowery as Mr. Burke's language, it continually recedes and presents
itself at a distance before you; but when you have got as far as you can go,
there is no point at all. Just thus it is with Mr. Burke's three hundred and
sixty-six pages. It is therefore difficult to reply to him. But as the points
he wishes to establish may be inferred from what he abuses, it is in his
paradoxes that we must look for his arguments.
As to the
tragic paintings by which Mr. Burke has outraged his own imagination, and seeks
to work upon that of his readers, they are very well calculated for theatrical
representation, where facts are manufactured for the sake of show, and
accommodated to produce, through the weakness of sympathy, a weeping effect.
But Mr. Burke should recollect that he is writing history, and not plays, and
that his readers will expect truth, and not the spouting rant of high-toned
exclamation.
When we see
a man dramatically lamenting in a publication intended to be believed that
"The age of chivalry is gone! that The glory of Europe is extinguished for
ever! that The unbought grace of life (if anyone knows what it is), the cheap
defence of nations, the nurse of manly sentiment and heroic enterprise is
gone!" and all this because the Quixot age of chivalry nonsense is gone,
what opinion can we form of his judgment, or what regard can we pay to his
facts? In the rhapsody of his imagination he has discovered a world of wind
mills, and his sorrows are that there are no Quixots to attack them. But if the
age of aristocracy, like that of chivalry, should fall (and they had originally
some connection) Mr. Burke, the trumpeter of the Order, may continue his parody
to the end, and finish with exclaiming: "Othello's occupation's
gone!"
Notwithstanding
Mr. Burke's horrid paintings, when the French Revolution is compared with the
Revolutions of other countries, the astonishment will be that it is marked with
so few sacrifices; but this astonishment will cease when we reflect that
principles, and not persons, were the meditated objects of destruction. The
mind of the nation was acted upon by a higher stimulus than what the
consideration of persons could inspire, and sought a higher conquest than could
be produced by the downfall of an enemy. Among the few who fell there do not
appear to be any that were intentionally singled out. They all of them had
their fate in the circumstances of the moment, and were not pursued with that
long, cold-blooded unabated revenge which pursued the unfortunate Scotch in the
affair of 1745.
Through the
whole of Mr. Burke's book I do not observe that the Bastille is mentioned more
than once, and that with a kind of implication as if he were sorry it was
pulled down, and wished it were built up again. "We have rebuilt
Newgate," says he, "and tenanted the mansion; and we have prisons
almost as strong as the Bastille for those who dare to libel the queens of
France."*[2] As to what a madman like the person called Lord George Gordon
might say, and to whom Newgate is rather a bedlam than a prison, it is unworthy
a rational consideration. It was a madman that libelled, and that is sufficient
apology; and it afforded an opportunity for confining him, which was the thing
that was wished for. But certain it is that Mr. Burke, who does not call
himself a madman (whatever other people may do), has libelled in the most
unprovoked manner, and in the grossest style of the most vulgar abuse, the
whole representative authority of France, and yet Mr. Burke takes his seat in
the British House of Commons! From his violence and his grief, his silence on
some points and his excess on others, it is difficult not to believe that Mr.
Burke is sorry, extremely sorry, that arbitrary power, the power of the Pope
and the Bastille, are pulled down.
Not one
glance of compassion, not one commiserating reflection that I can find
throughout his book, has he bestowed on those who lingered out the most
wretched of lives, a life without hope in the most miserable of prisons. It is
painful to behold a man employing his talents to corrupt himself. Nature has
been kinder to Mr. Burke than he is to her. He is not affected by the reality
of distress touching his heart, but by the showy resemblance of it striking his
imagination. He pities the plumage, but forgets the dying bird. Accustomed to
kiss the aristocratical hand that hath purloined him from himself, he
degenerates into a composition of art, and the genuine soul of nature forsakes
him. His hero or his heroine must be a tragedy-victim expiring in show, and not
the real prisoner of misery, sliding into death in the silence of a dungeon.
As Mr.
Burke has passed over the whole transaction of the Bastille (and his silence is
nothing in his favour), and has entertained his readers with refections on
supposed facts distorted into real falsehoods, I will give, since he has not,
some account of the circumstances which preceded that transaction. They will
serve to show that less mischief could scarcely have accompanied such an event
when considered with the treacherous and hostile aggravations of the enemies of
the Revolution.
The mind
can hardly picture to itself a more tremendous scene than what the city of
Paris exhibited at the time of taking the Bastille, and for two days before and
after, nor perceive the possibility of its quieting so soon. At a distance this
transaction has appeared only as an act of heroism standing on itself, and the
close political connection it had with the Revolution is lost in the brilliancy
of the achievement. But we are to consider it as the strength of the parties
brought man to man, and contending for the issue. The Bastille was to be either
the prize or the prison of the assailants. The downfall of it included the idea
of the downfall of despotism, and this compounded image was become as
figuratively united as Bunyan's Doubting Castle and Giant Despair.
The
National Assembly, before and at the time of taking the Bastille, was sitting
at Versailles, twelve miles distant from Paris. About a week before the rising
of the Partisans, and their taking the Bastille, it was discovered that a plot
was forming, at the head of which was the Count D'Artois, the king's youngest
brother, for demolishing the National Assembly, seizing its members, and
thereby crushing, by a coup de main, all hopes and prospects of forming a free
government. For the sake of humanity, as well as freedom, it is well this plan
did not succeed. Examples are. not wanting to show how dreadfully vindictive
and cruel are all old governments, when they are successful against what they
call a revolt.
This plan
must have been some time in contemplation; because, in order to carry it into
execution, it was necessary to collect a large military force round Paris, and
cut off the communication between that city and the National Assembly at
Versailles. The troops destined for this service were chiefly the foreign
troops in the pay of France, and who, for this particular purpose, were drawn
from the distant provinces where they were then stationed. When they were
collected to the amount of between twenty-five and thirty thousand, it was
judged time to put the plan into execution. The ministry who were then in
office, and who were friendly to the Revolution, were instantly dismissed and a
new ministry formed of those who had concerted the project, among whom was
Count de Broglio, and to his share was given the command of those troops. The
character of this man as described to me in a letter which I communicated to
Mr. Burke before he began to write his book, and from an authority which Mr.
Burke well knows was good, was that of "a high-flying aristocrat, cool,
and capable of every mischief."
While these
matters were agitating, the National Assembly stood in the most perilous and
critical situation that a body of men can be supposed to act in. They were the
devoted victims, and they knew it. They had the hearts and wishes of their
country on their side, but military authority they had none. The guards of
Broglio surrounded the hall where the Assembly sat, ready, at the word of
command, to seize their persons, as had been done the year before to the
Parliament of Paris. Had the National Assembly deserted their trust, or had
they exhibited signs of weakness or fear, their enemies had been encouraged and
their country depressed. When the situation they stood in, the cause they were
engaged in, and the crisis then ready to burst, which should determine their
personal and political fate and that of their country, and probably of Europe,
are taken into one view, none but a heart callous with prejudice or corrupted
by dependence can avoid interesting itself in their success.
The
Archbishop of Vienne was at this time President of the National Assembly- a
person too old to undergo the scene that a few days or a few hours might bring
forth. A man of more activity and bolder fortitude was necessary, and the
National Assembly chose (under the form of a Vice-President, for the Presidency
still resided in the Archbishop) M. de la Fayette; and this is the only
instance of a Vice-President being chosen. It was at the moment that this storm
was pending (July 11th) that a declaration of rights was brought forward by M.
de la Fayette, and is the same which is alluded to earlier. It was hastily
drawn up, and makes only a part of the more extensive declaration of rights
agreed upon and adopted afterwards by the National Assembly. The particular
reason for bringing it forward at this moment (M. de la Fayette has since
informed me) was that, if the National Assembly should fall in the threatened
destruction that then surrounded it, some trace of its principles might have
the chance of surviving the wreck.
Everything
now was drawing to a crisis. The event was freedom or slavery. On one side, an
army of nearly thirty thousand men; on the other, an unarmed body of citizens-
for the citizens of Paris, on whom the National Assembly must then immediately
depend, were as unarmed and as undisciplined as the citizens of London are now.
The French guards had given strong symptoms of their being attached to the
national cause; but their numbers were small, not a tenth part of the force
that Broglio commanded, and their officers were in the interest of Broglio.
Matters
being now ripe for execution, the new ministry made their appearance in office.
The reader will carry in his mind that the Bastille was taken the 14th July;
the point of time I am now speaking of is the 12th. Immediately on the news of
the change of ministry reaching Paris, in the afternoon, all the playhouses and
places of entertainment, shops and houses, were shut up. The change of ministry
was considered as the prelude of hostilities, and the opinion was rightly
founded.
The foreign
troops began to advance towards the city. The Prince de Lambesc, who commanded
a body of German cavalry, approached by the Place of Louis XV., which connects
itself with some of the streets. In his march, he insulted and struck an old
man with a sword. The French are remarkable for their respect to old age; and
the insolence with which it appeared to be done, uniting with the general
fermentation they were in, produced a powerful effect, and a cry of "To
arms! to arms!" spread itself in a moment over the city.
Arms they
had none, nor scarcely anyone who knew the use of them; but desperate
resolution, when every hope is at stake, supplies, for a while, the want of
arms. Near where the Prince de Lambesc was drawn up, were large piles of stones
collected for building the new bridge, and with these the people attacked the
cavalry. A party of French guards upon hearing the firing, rushed from their
quarters and joined the people; and night coming on, the cavalry retreated.
The streets
of Paris, being narrow, are favourable for defence, and the loftiness of the
houses, consisting of many stories, from which great annoyance might be given,
secured them against nocturnal enterprises; and the night was spent in
providing themselves with every sort of weapon they could make or procure:
guns, swords, blacksmiths' hammers, carpenters' axes, iron crows, pikes,
halberts, pitchforks, spits, clubs, etc., etc. The incredible numbers in which
they assembled the next morning, and the still more incredible resolution they
exhibited, embarrassed and astonished their enemies. Little did the new
ministry expect such a salute. Accustomed to slavery themselves, they had no
idea that liberty was capable of such inspiration, or that a body of unarmed
citizens would dare to face the military force of thirty thousand men. Every
moment of this day was employed in collecting arms, concerting plans, and
arranging themselves into the best order which such an instantaneous movement
could afford. Broglio continued lying round the city, but made no further
advances this day, and the succeeding night passed with as much tranquility as
such a scene could possibly produce.
But defence
only was not the object of the citizens. They had a cause at stake, on which
depended their freedom or their slavery. They every moment expected an attack,
or to hear of one made on the National Assembly; and in such a situation, the
most prompt measures are sometimes the best. The object that now presented
itself was the Bastille; and the eclat of carrying such a fortress in the face
of such an army, could not fail to strike terror into the new ministry, who had
scarcely yet had time to meet. By some intercepted correspondence this morning,
it was discovered that the Mayor of Paris, M. Defflesselles, who appeared to be
in the interest of the citizens, was betraying them; and from this discovery,
there remained no doubt that Broglio would reinforce the Bastille the ensuing
evening. It was therefore necessary to attack it that day; but before this
could be done, it was first necessary to procure a better supply of arms than
they were then possessed of.
There was,
adjoining to the city a large magazine of arms deposited at the Hospital of the
Invalids, which the citizens summoned to surrender; and as the place was
neither defensible, nor attempted much defence, they soon succeeded. Thus
supplied, they marched to attack the Bastille; a vast mixed multitude of all
ages, and of all degrees, armed with all sorts of weapons. Imagination would
fail in describing to itself the appearance of such a procession, and of the
anxiety of the events which a few hours or a few minutes might produce. What
plans the ministry were forming, were as unknown to the people within the city,
as what the citizens were doing was unknown to the ministry; and what movements
Broglio might make for the support or relief of the place, were to the citizens
equally as unknown. All was mystery and hazard.
That the
Bastille was attacked with an enthusiasm of heroism, such only as the highest
animation of liberty could inspire, and carried in the space of a few hours, is
an event which the world is fully possessed of. I am not undertaking the detail
of the attack, but bringing into view the conspiracy against the nation which
provoked it, and which fell with the Bastille. The prison to which the new
ministry were dooming the National Assembly, in addition to its being the high
altar and castle of despotism, became the proper object to begin with. This
enterprise broke up the new ministry, who began now to fly from the ruin they
had prepared for others. The troops of Broglio dispersed, and himself fled
also.
Mr. Burke
has spoken a great deal about plots, but he has never once spoken of this plot
against the National Assembly, and the liberties of the nation; and that he
might not, he has passed over all the circumstances that might throw it in his
way. The exiles who have fled from France, whose case he so much interests
himself in, and from whom he has had his lesson, fled in consequence of the
miscarriage of this plot. No plot was formed against them; they were plotting
against others; and those who fell, met, not unjustly, the punishment they were
preparing to execute. But will Mr. Burke say that if this plot, contrived with
the subtilty of an ambuscade, had succeeded, the successful party would have
restrained their wrath so soon? Let the history of all governments answer the
question.
Whom has
the National Assembly brought to the scaffold? None. They were themselves the
devoted victims of this plot, and they have not retaliated; why, then, are they
charged with revenge they have not acted? In the tremendous breaking forth of a
whole people, in which all degrees, tempers and characters are confounded,
delivering themselves, by a miracle of exertion, from the destruction meditated
against them, is it to be expected that nothing will happen? When men are sore
with the sense of oppressions, and menaced with the prospects of new ones, is
the calmness of philosophy or the palsy of insensibility to be looked for? Mr.
Burke exclaims against outrage; yet the greatest is that which himself has
committed. His book is a volume of outrage, not apologised for by the impulse
of a moment, but cherished through a space of ten months; yet Mr. Burke had no
provocation- no life, no interest, at stake.
More of the
citizens fell in this struggle than of their opponents: but four or five
persons were seized by the populace, and instantly put to death; the Governor
of the Bastille, and the Mayor of Paris, who was detected in the act of
betraying them; and afterwards Foulon, one of the new ministry, and Berthier,
his son-in-law, who had accepted the office of intendant of Paris. Their heads
were stuck upon spikes, and carried about the city; and it is upon this mode of
punishment that Mr. Burke builds a great part of his tragic scene. Let us
therefore examine how men came by the idea of punishing in this manner.
They learn
it from the governments they live under; and retaliate the punishments they
have been accustomed to behold. The heads stuck upon spikes, which remained for
years upon Temple Bar, differed nothing in the horror of the scene from those
carried about upon spikes at Paris; yet this was done by the English
Government. It may perhaps be said that it signifies nothing to a man what is
done to him after he is dead; but it signifies much to the living; it either
tortures their feelings or hardens their hearts, and in either case it
instructs them how to punish when power falls into their hands.
Lay then
the axe to the root, and teach governments humanity. It is their sanguinary
punishments which corrupt mankind. In England the punishment in certain cases
is by hanging, drawing and quartering; the heart of the sufferer is cut out and
held up to the view of the populace. In France, under the former Government,
the punishments were not less barbarous. Who does not remember the execution of
Damien, torn to pieces by horses? The effect of those cruel spectacles
exhibited to the populace is to destroy tenderness or excite revenge; and by
the base and false idea of governing men by terror, instead of reason, they
become precedents. It is over the lowest class of mankind that government by
terror is intended to operate, and it is on them that it operates to the worst
effect. They have sense enough to feel they are the objects aimed at; and they
inflict in their turn the examples of terror they have been instructed to
practise.
There is in
all European countries a large class of people of that description, which in
England is called the "mob." Of this class were those who committed
the burnings and devastations in London in 1780, and of this class were those
who carried the heads on iron spikes in Paris. Foulon and Berthier were taken
up in the country, and sent to Paris, to undergo their examination at the Hotel
de Ville; for the National Assembly, immediately on the new ministry coming
into office, passed a decree, which they communicated to the King and Cabinet,
that they (the National Assembly) would hold the ministry, of which Foulon was
one, responsible for the measures they were advising and pursuing; but the mob,
incensed at the appearance of Foulon and Berthier, tore them from their
conductors before they were carried to the Hotel de Ville, and executed them on
the spot. Why then does Mr. Burke charge outrages of this kind on a whole
people? As well may he charge the riots and outrages of 1780 on all the people
of London, or those in Ireland on all his countrymen.
But
everything we see or hear offensive to our feelings and derogatory to the human
character should lead to other reflections than those of reproach. Even the
beings who commit them have some claim to our consideration. How then is it
that such vast classes of mankind as are distinguished by the appellation of
the vulgar, or the ignorant mob, are so numerous in all old countries? The
instant we ask ourselves this question, reflection feels an answer. They rise,
as an unavoidable consequence, out of the ill construction of all old
governments in Europe, England included with the rest. It is by distortedly
exalting some men, that others are distortedly debased, till the whole is out
of nature. A vast mass of mankind are degradedly thrown into the back-ground of
the human picture, to bring forward, with greater glare, the puppet-show of
state and aristocracy. In the commencement of a revolution, those men are
rather the followers of the camp than of the standard of liberty, and have yet
to be instructed how to reverence it.
I give to
Mr. Burke all his theatrical exaggerations for facts, and I then ask him if
they do not establish the certainty of what I here lay down? Admitting them to
be true, they show the necessity of the French Revolution, as much as any one
thing he could have asserted. These outrages were not the effect of the
principles of the Revolution, but of the degraded mind that existed before the
Revolution, and which the Revolution is calculated to reform. Place them then
to their proper cause, and take the reproach of them to your own side.
It is the
honour of the National Assembly and the city of Paris that, during such a
tremendous scene of arms and confusion, beyond the control of all authority,
they have been able, by the influence of example and exhortation, to restrain
so much. Never were more pains taken to instruct and enlighten mankind, and to
make them see that their interest consisted in their virtue, and not in their
revenge, than have been displayed in the Revolution of France. I now proceed to
make some remarks on Mr. Burke's account of the expedition to Versailles,
October the 5th and 6th.
I can
consider Mr. Burke's book in scarcely any other light than a dramatic
performance; and he must, I think, have considered it in the same light
himself, by the poetical liberties he has taken of omitting some facts,
distorting others, and making the whole machinery bend to produce a stage
effect. Of this kind is his account of the expedition to Versailles. He begins
this account by omitting the only facts which as causes are known to be true;
everything beyond these is conjecture, even in Paris; and he then works up a
tale accommodated to his own passions and prejudices.
It is to be
observed throughout Mr. Burke's book that he never speaks of plots against the
Revolution; and it is from those plots that all the mischiefs have arisen. It
suits his purpose to exhibit the consequences without their causes. It is one
of the arts of the drama to do so. If the crimes of men were exhibited with
their sufferings, stage effect would sometimes be lost, and the audience would
be inclined to approve where it was intended they should commiserate.
After all
the investigations that have been made into this intricate affair (the
expedition to Versailles), it still remains enveloped in all that kind of
mystery which ever accompanies events produced more from a concurrence of
awkward circumstances than from fixed design. While the characters of men are
forming, as is always the case in revolutions, there is a reciprocal suspicion,
and a disposition to misinterpret each other; and even parties directly
opposite in principle will sometimes concur in pushing forward the same
movement with very different views, and with the hopes of its producing very
different consequences. A great deal of this may be discovered in this embarrassed
affair, and yet the issue of the whole was what nobody had in view.
The only
things certainly known are that considerable uneasiness was at this time
excited at Paris by the delay of the King in not sanctioning and forwarding the
decrees of the National Assembly, particularly that of the Declaration of the
Rights of Man, and the decrees of the fourth of August, which contained the
foundation principles on which the constitution was to be erected. The kindest,
and perhaps the fairest conjecture upon this matter is, that some of the
ministers intended to make remarks and observations upon certain parts of them
before they were finally sanctioned and sent to the provinces; but be this as
it may, the enemies of the Revolution derived hope from the delay, and the
friends of the Revolution uneasiness.
During this
state of suspense, the Garde du Corps, which was composed as such regiments
generally are, of persons much connected with the Court, gave an entertainment
at Versailles (October 1) to some foreign regiments then arrived; and when the
entertainment was at the height, on a signal given, the Garde du Corps tore the
national cockade from their hats, trampled it under foot, and replaced it with
a counter-cockade prepared for the purpose. An indignity of this kind amounted
to defiance. It was like declaring war; and if men will give challenges they
must expect consequences. But all this Mr. Burke has carefully kept out of
sight. He begins his account by saying: "History will record that on the
morning of the 6th October, 1789, the King and Queen of France, after a day of
confusion, alarm, dismay, and slaughter, lay down under the pledged security of
public faith to indulge nature in a few hours of respite, and troubled
melancholy repose." This is neither the sober style of history, nor the
intention of it. It leaves everything to be guessed at and mistaken. One would
at least think there had been a battle; and a battle there probably would have
been had it not been for the moderating prudence of those whom Mr. Burke
involves in his censures. By his keeping the Garde du Corps out of sight Mr.
Burke has afforded himself the dramatic licence of putting the King and Queen
in their places, as if the object of the expedition was against them. But to
return to my account-
This
conduct of the Garde du Corps, as might well be expected, alarmed and enraged
the Partisans. The colors of the cause, and the cause itself, were become too
united to mistake the intention of the insult, and the Partisans were
determined to call the Garde du Corps to an account. There was certainly
nothing of the cowardice of assassination in marching in the face of the day to
demand satisfaction, if such a phrase may be used, of a body of armed men who
had voluntarily given defiance. But the circumstance which serves to throw this
affair into embarrassment is, that the enemies of the Revolution appear to have
encouraged it as well as its friends. The one hoped to prevent a civil war by
checking it in time, and the other to make one. The hopes of those opposed to
the Revolution rested in making the King of their party, and getting him from
Versailles to Metz, where they expected to collect a force and set up a
standard. We have, therefore, two different objects presenting themselves at
the same time, and to be accomplished by the same means: the one to chastise
the Garde du Corps, which was the object of the Partisans; the other to render
the confusion of such a scene an inducement to the King to set off for Metz.
On the 5th
of October a very numerous body of women, and men in the disguise of women,
collected around the Hotel de Ville or town-hall at Paris, and set off for
Versailles. Their professed object was the Garde du Corps; but prudent men
readily recollect that mischief is more easily begun than ended; and this
impressed itself with the more force from the suspicions already stated, and
the irregularity of such a cavalcade. As soon, therefore, as a sufficient force
could be collected, M. de la Fayette, by orders from the civil authority of Paris,
set off after them at the head of twenty thousand of the Paris militia. The
Revolution could derive no benefit from confusion, and its opposers might. By
an amiable and spirited manner of address he had hitherto been fortunate in
calming disquietudes, and in this he was extraordinarily successful; to
frustrate, therefore, the hopes of those who might seek to improve this scene
into a sort of justifiable necessity for the King's quitting Versailles and
withdrawing to Metz, and to prevent at the same time the consequences that
might ensue between the Garde du Corps and this phalanx of men and women, he
forwarded expresses to the King, that he was on his march to Versailles, by the
orders of the civil authority of Paris, for the purpose of peace and protection,
expressing at the same time the necessity of restraining the Garde du Corps
from firing upon the people.*[3]
He arrived
at Versailles between ten and eleven at night. The Garde du Corps was drawn up,
and the people had arrived some time before, but everything had remained
suspended. Wisdom and policy now consisted in changing a scene of danger into a
happy event. M. de la Fayette became the mediator between the enraged parties;
and the King, to remove the uneasiness which had arisen from the delay already
stated, sent for the President of the National Assembly, and signed the
Declaration of the Rights of Man, and such other parts of the constitution as
were in readiness.
It was now
about one in the morning. Everything appeared to be composed, and a general
congratulation took place. By the beat of a drum a proclamation was made that
the citizens of Versailles would give the hospitality of their houses to their
fellow-citizens of Paris. Those who could not be accommodated in this manner
remained in the streets, or took up their quarters in the churches; and at two
o'clock the King and Queen retired.
In this
state matters passed till the break of day, when a fresh disturbance arose from
the censurable conduct of some of both parties, for such characters there will
be in all such scenes. One of the Garde du Corps appeared at one of the windows
of the palace, and the people who had remained during the night in the streets
accosted him with reviling and provocative language. Instead of retiring, as in
such a case prudence would have dictated, he presented his musket, fired, and
killed one of the Paris militia. The peace being thus broken, the people rushed
into the palace in quest of the offender. They attacked the quarters of the
Garde du Corps within the palace, and pursued them throughout the avenues of
it, and to the apartments of the King. On this tumult, not the Queen only, as
Mr. Burke has represented it, but every person in the palace, was awakened and
alarmed; and M. de la Fayette had a second time to interpose between the
parties, the event of which was that the Garde du Corps put on the national
cockade, and the matter ended as by oblivion, after the loss of two or three
lives.
During the
latter part of the time in which this confusion was acting, the King and Queen
were in public at the balcony, and neither of them concealed for safety's sake,
as Mr. Burke insinuates. Matters being thus appeased, and tranquility restored,
a general acclamation broke forth of Le Roi a Paris- Le Roi a Paris- The King to
Paris. It was the shout of peace, and immediately accepted on the part of the
King. By this measure all future projects of trapanning the King to Metz, and
setting up the standard of opposition to the constitution, were prevented, and
the suspicions extinguished. The King and his family reached Paris in the
evening, and were congratulated on their arrival by M. Bailly, the Mayor of
Paris, in the name of the citizens. Mr. Burke, who throughout his book
confounds things, persons, and principles, as in his remarks on M. Bailly's
address, confounded time also. He censures M. Bailly for calling it "un
bon jour," a good day. Mr. Burke should have informed himself that this
scene took up the space of two days, the day on which it began with every appearance
of danger and mischief, and the day on which it terminated without the
mischiefs that threatened; and that it is to this peaceful termination that M.
Bailly alludes, and to the arrival of the King at Paris. Not less than three
hundred thousand persons arranged themselves in the procession from Versailles
to Paris, and not an act of molestation was committed during the whole march.
Mr. Burke
on the authority of M. Lally Tollendal, a deserter from the National Assembly,
says that on entering Paris, the people shouted "Tous les eveques a la
lanterne." All Bishops to be hanged at the lanthorn or lamp-posts. It is
surprising that nobody could hear this but Lally Tollendal, and that nobody
should believe it but Mr. Burke. It has not the least connection with any part
of the transaction, and is totally foreign to every circumstance of it. The
Bishops had never been introduced before into any scene of Mr. Burke's drama:
why then are they, all at once, and altogether, tout a coup, et tous ensemble,
introduced now? Mr. Burke brings forward his Bishops and his lanthorn-like
figures in a magic lanthorn, and raises his scenes by contrast instead of
connection. But it serves to show, with the rest of his book what little credit
ought to be given where even probability is set at defiance, for the purpose of
defaming; and with this reflection, instead of a soliloquy in praise of
chivalry, as Mr. Burke has done, I close the account of the expedition to
Versailles.*[4]
I have now
to follow Mr. Burke through a pathless wilderness of rhapsodies, and a sort of
descant upon governments, in which he asserts whatever he pleases, on the
presumption of its being believed, without offering either evidence or reasons
for so doing.
Before
anything can be reasoned upon to a conclusion, certain facts, principles, or
data, to reason from, must be established, admitted, or denied. Mr. Burke with
his usual outrage, abused the Declaration of the Rights of Man, published by
the National Assembly of France, as the basis on which the constitution of France
is built. This he calls "paltry and blurred sheets of paper about the
rights of man." Does Mr. Burke mean to deny that man has any rights? If he
does, then he must mean that there are no such things as rights anywhere, and
that he has none himself; for who is there in the world but man? But if Mr.
Burke means to admit that man has rights, the question then will be: What are
those rights, and how man came by them originally?
The error of
those who reason by precedents drawn from antiquity, respecting the rights of
man, is that they do not go far enough into antiquity. They do not go the whole
way. They stop in some of the intermediate stages of an hundred or a thousand
years, and produce what was then done, as a rule for the present day. This is
no authority at all. If we travel still farther into antiquity, we shall find a
direct contrary opinion and practice prevailing; and if antiquity is to be
authority, a thousand such authorities may be produced, successively
contradicting each other; but if we proceed on, we shall at last come out
right; we shall come to the time when man came from the hand of his Maker. What
was he then? Man. Man was his high and only title, and a higher cannot be given
him. But of titles I shall speak hereafter.
We are now
got at the origin of man, and at the origin of his rights. As to the manner in
which the world has been governed from that day to this, it is no farther any
concern of ours than to make a proper use of the errors or the improvements
which the history of it presents. Those who lived an hundred or a thousand
years ago, were then moderns, as we are now. They had their ancients, and those
ancients had others, and we also shall be ancients in our turn. If the mere
name of antiquity is to govern in the affairs of life, the people who are to
live an hundred or a thousand years hence, may as well take us for a precedent,
as we make a precedent of those who lived an hundred or a thousand years ago.
The fact is, that portions of antiquity, by proving everything, establish
nothing. It is authority against authority all the way, till we come to the
divine origin of the rights of man at the creation. Here our enquiries find a
resting-place, and our reason finds a home. If a dispute about the rights of
man had arisen at the distance of an hundred years from the creation, it is to
this source of authority they must have referred, and it is to this same source
of authority that we must now refer.
Though I
mean not to touch upon any sectarian principle of religion, yet it may be worth
observing, that the genealogy of Christ is traced to Adam. Why then not trace
the rights of man to the creation of man? I will answer the question. Because
there have been upstart governments, thrusting themselves between, and
presumptuously working to un-make man.
If any
generation of men ever possessed the right of dictating the mode by which the
world should be governed for ever, it was the first generation that existed;
and if that generation did it not, no succeeding generation can show any
authority for doing it, nor can set any up. The illuminating and divine
principle of the equal rights of man (for it has its origin from the Maker of
man) relates, not only to the living individuals, but to generations of men
succeeding each other. Every generation is equal in rights to generations which
preceded it, by the same rule that every individual is born equal in rights
with his contemporary.
Every
history of the creation, and every traditionary account, whether from the
lettered or unlettered world, however they may vary in their opinion or belief
of certain particulars, all agree in establishing one point, the unity of man;
by which I mean that men are all of one degree, and consequently that all men
are born equal, and with equal natural right, in the same manner as if
posterity had been continued by creation instead of generation, the latter
being the only mode by which the former is carried forward; and consequently
every child born into the world must be considered as deriving its existence
from God. The world is as new to him as it was to the first man that existed,
and his natural right in it is of the same kind.
The Mosaic
account of the creation, whether taken as divine authority or merely
historical, is full to this point, the unity or equality of man. The expression
admits of no controversy. "And God said, Let us make man in our own image.
In the image of God created he him; male and female created he them." The
distinction of sexes is pointed out, but no other distinction is even implied.
If this be not divine authority, it is at least historical authority, and shows
that the equality of man, so far from being a modern doctrine, is the oldest
upon record.
It is also
to be observed that all the religions known in the world are founded, so far as
they relate to man, on the unity of man, as being all of one degree. Whether in
heaven or in hell, or in whatever state man may be supposed to exist hereafter,
the good and the bad are the only distinctions. Nay, even the laws of
governments are obliged to slide into this principle, by making degrees to
consist in crimes and not in persons.
It is one
of the greatest of all truths, and of the highest advantage to cultivate. By
considering man in this light, and by instructing him to consider himself in
this light, it places him in a close connection with all his duties, whether to
his Creator or to the creation, of which he is a part; and it is only when he
forgets his origin, or, to use a more fashionable phrase, his birth and family,
that he becomes dissolute. It is not among the least of the evils of the
present existing governments in all parts of Europe that man, considered as
man, is thrown back to a vast distance from his Maker, and the artificial chasm
filled up with a succession of barriers, or sort of turnpike gates, through
which he has to pass. I will quote Mr. Burke's catalogue of barriers that he
has set up between man and his Maker. Putting himself in the character of a herald,
he says: "We fear God- we look with awe to kings- with affection to
Parliaments with duty to magistrates- with reverence to priests, and with
respect to nobility." Mr. Burke has forgotten to put in
"'chivalry." He has also forgotten to put in Peter.
The duty of
man is not a wilderness of turnpike gates, through which he is to pass by
tickets from one to the other. It is plain and simple, and consists but of two
points. His duty to God, which every man must feel; and with respect to his
neighbor, to do as he would be done by. If those to whom power is delegated do
well, they will be respected: if not, they will be despised; and with regard to
those to whom no power is delegated, but who assume it, the rational world can
know nothing of them.
Hitherto we
have spoken only (and that but in part) of the natural rights of man. We have
now to consider the civil rights of man, and to show how the one originates
from the other. Man did not enter into society to become worse than he was
before, nor to have fewer rights than he had before, but to have those rights
better secured. His natural rights are the foundation of all his civil rights.
But in order to pursue this distinction with more precision, it will be
necessary to mark the different qualities of natural and civil rights.
A few words
will explain this. Natural rights are those which appertain to man in right of
his existence. Of this kind are all the intellectual rights, or rights of the
mind, and also all those rights of acting as an individual for his own comfort
and happiness, which are not injurious to the natural rights of others. Civil
rights are those which appertain to man in right of his being a member of
society. Every civil right has for its foundation some natural right
pre-existing in the individual, but to the enjoyment of which his individual
power is not, in all cases, sufficiently competent. Of this kind are all those
which relate to security and protection.
From this
short review it will be easy to distinguish between that class of natural
rights which man retains after entering into society and those which he throws
into the common stock as a member of society.
The natural
rights which he retains are all those in which the Power to execute is as
perfect in the individual as the right itself. Among this class, as is before
mentioned, are all the intellectual rights, or rights of the mind; consequently
religion is one of those rights. The natural rights which are not retained, are
all those in which, though the right is perfect in the individual, the power to
execute them is defective. They answer not his purpose. A man, by natural
right, has a right to judge in his own cause; and so far as the right of the
mind is concerned, he never surrenders it. But what availeth it him to judge,
if he has not power to redress? He therefore deposits this right in the common
stock of society, and takes the ann of society, of which he is a part, in
preference and in addition to his own. Society grants him nothing. Every man is
a proprietor in society, and draws on the capital as a matter of right.
From these
premisses two or three certain conclusions will follow:
First, That
every civil right grows out of a natural right; or, in other words, is a
natural right exchanged.
Secondly,
That civil power properly considered as such is made up of the aggregate of
that class of the natural rights of man, which becomes defective in the
individual in point of power, and answers not his purpose, but when collected
to a focus becomes competent to the Purpose of every one.
Thirdly,
That the power produced from the aggregate of natural rights, imperfect in
power in the individual, cannot be applied to invade the natural rights which
are retained in the individual, and in which the power to execute is as perfect
as the right itself.
We have
now, in a few words, traced man from a natural individual to a member of
society, and shown, or endeavoured to show, the quality of the natural rights
retained, and of those which are exchanged for civil rights. Let us now apply
these principles to governments.
In casting
our eyes over the world, it is extremely easy to distinguish the governments
which have arisen out of society, or out of the social compact, from those
which have not; but to place this in a clearer light than what a single glance
may afford, it will be proper to take a review of the several sources from
which governments have arisen and on which they have been founded.
They may be
all comprehended under three heads.
First,
Superstition.
Secondly,
Power.
Thirdly, The
common interest of society and the common rights of man.
The first
was a government of priestcraft, the second of conquerors, and the third of
reason.
When a set
of artful men pretended, through the medium of oracles, to hold intercourse
with the Deity, as familiarly as they now march up the back-stairs in European
courts, the world was completely under the government of superstition. The
oracles were consulted, and whatever they were made to say became the law; and
this sort of government lasted as long as this sort of superstition lasted.
After these
a race of conquerors arose, whose government, like that of William the
Conqueror, was founded in power, and the sword assumed the name of a sceptre.
Governments thus established last as long as the power to support them lasts;
but that they might avail themselves of every engine in their favor, they
united fraud to force, and set up an idol which they called Divine Right, and
which, in imitation of the Pope, who affects to be spiritual and temporal, and in
contradiction to the Founder of the Christian religion, twisted itself
afterwards into an idol of another shape, called Church and State. The key of
St. Peter and the key of the Treasury became quartered on one another, and the
wondering cheated multitude worshipped the invention.
When I
contemplate the natural dignity of man, when I feel (for Nature has not been
kind enough to me to blunt my feelings) for the honour and happiness of its
character, I become irritated at the attempt to govern mankind by force and
fraud, as if they were all knaves and fools, and can scarcely avoid disgust at
those who are thus imposed upon.
We have now
to review the governments which arise out of society, in contradistinction to
those which arose out of superstition and conquest.
It has been
thought a considerable advance towards establishing the principles of Freedom
to say that Government is a compact between those who govern and those who are
governed; but this cannot be true, because it is putting the effect before the cause;
for as man must have existed before governments existed, there necessarily was
a time when governments did not exist, and consequently there could originally
exist no governors to form such a compact with.
The fact therefore
must be that the individuals themselves, each in his own personal and sovereign
right, entered into a compact with each other to produce a government: and this
is the only mode in which governments have a right to arise, and the only
principle on which they have a right to exist.
To possess
ourselves of a clear idea of what government is, or ought to be, we must trace
it to its origin. In doing this we shall easily discover that governments must
have arisen either out of the people or over the people. Mr. Burke has made no
distinction. He investigates nothing to its source, and therefore he confounds
everything; but he has signified his intention of undertaking, at some future
opportunity, a comparison between the constitution of England and France. As he
thus renders it a subject of controversy by throwing the gauntlet, I take him
upon his own ground. It is in high challenges that high truths have the right
of appearing; and I accept it with the more readiness because it affords me, at
the same time, an opportunity of pursuing the subject with respect to
governments arising out of society.
But it will
be first necessary to define what is meant by a Constitution. It is not
sufficient that we adopt the word; we must fix also a standard signification to
it.
A
constitution is not a thing in name only, but in fact. It has not an ideal, but
a real existence; and wherever it cannot be produced in a visible form, there
is none. A constitution is a thing antecedent to a government, and a government
is only the creature of a constitution. The constitution of a country is not
the act of its government, but of the people constituting its government. It is
the body of elements, to which you can refer, and quote article by article; and
which contains the principles on which the government shall be established, the
manner in which it shall be organised, the powers it shall have, the mode of
elections, the duration of Parliaments, or by what other name such bodies may
be called; the powers which the executive part of the government shall have;
and in fine, everything that relates to the complete organisation of a civil
government, and the principles on which it shall act, and by which it shall be
bound. A constitution, therefore, is to a government what the laws made
afterwards by that government are to a court of judicature. The court of
judicature does not make the laws, neither can it alter them; it only acts in
conformity to the laws made: and the government is in like manner governed by
the constitution.
Can, then,
Mr. Burke produce the English Constitution? If he cannot, we may fairly
conclude that though it has been so much talked about, no such thing as a
constitution exists, or ever did exist, and consequently that the people have
yet a constitution to form.
Mr. Burke
will not, I presume, deny the position I have already advanced- namely, that
governments arise either out of the people or over the people. The English
Government is one of those which arose out of a conquest, and not out of
society, and consequently it arose over the people; and though it has been much
modified from the opportunity of circumstances since the time of William the
Conqueror, the country has never yet regenerated itself, and is therefore
without a constitution.
I readily
perceive the reason why Mr. Burke declined going into the comparison between
the English and French constitutions, because he could not but perceive, when
he sat down to the task, that no such a thing as a constitution existed on his
side the question. His book is certainly bulky enough to have contained all he
could say on this subject, and it would have been the best manner in which
people could have judged of their separate merits. Why then has he declined the
only thing that was worth while to write upon? It was the strongest ground he
could take, if the advantages were on his side, but the weakest if they were
not; and his declining to take it is either a sign that he could not possess it
or could not maintain it.
Mr. Burke
said, in a speech last winter in Parliament, "that when the National
Assembly first met in three Orders (the Tiers Etat, the Clergy, and the
Noblesse), France had then a good constitution." This shows, among
numerous other instances, that Mr. Burke does not understand what a constitution
is. The persons so met were not a constitution, but a convention, to make a
constitution.
The present
National Assembly of France is, strictly speaking, the personal social compact.
The members of it are the delegates of the nation in its original character; future
assemblies will be the delegates of the nation in its organised character. The
authority of the present Assembly is different from what the authority of
future Assemblies will be. The authority of the present one is to form a
constitution; the authority of future assemblies will be to legislate according
to the principles and forms prescribed in that constitution; and if experience
should hereafter show that alterations, amendments, or additions are necessary,
the constitution will point out the mode by which such things shall be done,
and not leave it to the discretionary power of the future government.
A
government on the principles on which constitutional governments arising out of
society are established, cannot have the right of altering itself. If it had,
it would be arbitrary. It might make itself what it pleased; and wherever such
a right is set up, it shows there is no constitution. The act by which the
English Parliament empowered itself to sit seven years, shows there is no
constitution in England. It might, by the same self-authority, have sat any
great number of years, or for life. The bill which the present Mr. Pitt brought
into Parliament some years ago, to reform Parliament, was on the same erroneous
principle. The right of reform is in the nation in its original character, and
the constitutional method would be by a general convention elected for the
purpose. There is, moreover, a paradox in the idea of vitiated bodies reforming
themselves.
From these
preliminaries I proceed to draw some comparisons. I have already spoken of the
declaration of rights; and as I mean to be as concise as possible, I shall
proceed to other parts of the French Constitution.
The
constitution of France says that every man who pays a tax of sixty sous per
annum (2s. 6d. English) is an elector. What article will Mr. Burke place
against this? Can anything be more limited, and at the same time more
capricious, than the qualification of electors is in England? Limited- because
not one man in an hundred (I speak much within compass) is admitted to vote.
Capricious- because the lowest character that can be supposed to exist, and who
has not so much as the visible means of an honest livelihood, is an elector in
some places: while in other places, the man who pays very large taxes, and has
a known fair character, and the farmer who rents to the amount of three or four
hundred pounds a year, with a property on that farm to three or four times that
amount, is not admitted to be an elector. Everything is out of nature, as Mr.
Burke says on another occasion, in this strange chaos, and all sorts of follies
are blended with all sorts of crimes. William the Conqueror and his descendants
parcelled out the country in this manner, and bribed some parts of it by what
they call charters to hold the other parts of it the better subjected to their
will. This is the reason why so many of those charters abound in Cornwall; the
people were averse to the Government established at the Conquest, and the towns
were garrisoned and bribed to enslave the country. All the old charters are the
badges of this conquest, and it is from this source that the capriciousness of
election arises.
The French
Constitution says that the number of representatives for any place shall be in
a ratio to the number of taxable inhabitants or electors. What article will Mr.
Burke place against this? The county of York, which contains nearly a million
of souls, sends two county members; and so does the county of Rutland, which
contains not an hundredth part of that number. The old town of Sarum, which
contains not three houses, sends two members; and the town of Manchester, which
contains upward of sixty thousand souls, is not admitted to send any. Is there
any principle in these things? It is admitted that all this is altered, but
there is much to be done yet, before we have a fair representation of the
people. Is there anything by which you can trace the marks of freedom, or
discover those of wisdom? No wonder then Mr. Burke has declined the comparison,
and endeavored to lead his readers from the point by a wild, unsystematical
display of paradoxical rhapsodies.
The French
Constitution says that the National Assembly shall be elected every two years.
What article will Mr. Burke place against this? Why, that the nation has no
right at all in the case; that the government is perfectly arbitrary with
respect to this point; and he can quote for his authority the precedent of a
former Parliament.
The French
Constitution says there shall be no game laws, that the farmer on whose lands
wild game shall be found (for it is by the produce of his lands they are fed)
shall have a right to what he can take; that there shall be no monopolies of
any kind- that all trades shall be free and every man free to follow any
occupation by which he can procure an honest livelihood, and in any place,
town, or city throughout the nation. What will Mr. Burke say to this? In
England, game is made the property of those at whose expense it is not fed; and
with respect to monopolies, the country is cut up into monopolies. Every
chartered town is an aristocratical monopoly in itself, and the qualification
of electors proceeds out of those chartered monopolies. Is this freedom? Is
this what Mr. Burke means by a constitution?
In these
chartered monopolies, a man coming from another part of the country is hunted
from them as if he were a foreign enemy. An Englishman is not free of his own
country; every one of those places presents a barrier in his way, and tells him
he is not a freeman- that he has no rights. Within these monopolies are other
monopolies. In a city, such for instance as Bath, which contains between twenty
and thirty thousand inhabitants, the right of electing representatives to
Parliament is monopolised by about thirty-one persons. And within these
monopolies are still others. A man even of the same town, whose parents were
not in circumstances to give him an occupation, is debarred, in many cases,
from the natural right of acquiring one, be his genius or industry what it may.
Are these
things examples to hold out to a country regenerating itself from slavery, like
France? Certainly they are not, and certain am I, that when the people of
England come to reflect upon them they will, like France, annihilate those
badges of ancient oppression, those traces of a conquered nation. Had Mr. Burke
possessed talents similar to the author of "On the Wealth of
Nations." he would have comprehended all the parts which enter into, and,
by assemblage, form a constitution. He would have reasoned from minutiae to
magnitude. It is not from his prejudices only, but from the disorderly cast of
his genius, that he is unfitted for the subject he writes upon. Even his genius
is without a constitution. It is a genius at random, and not a genius
constituted. But he must say something. He has therefore mounted in the air
like a balloon, to draw the eyes of the multitude from the ground they stand
upon.
Much is to
be learned from the French Constitution. Conquest and tyranny transplanted
themselves with William the Conqueror from Normandy into England, and the
country is yet disfigured with the marks. May, then, the example of all France
contribute to regenerate the freedom which a province of it destroyed!
The French
Constitution says that to preserve the national representation from being
corrupt, no member of the National Assembly shall be an officer of the
government, a placeman or a pensioner. What will Mr. Burke place against this?
I will whisper his answer: Loaves and Fishes. Ah! this government of loaves and
fishes has more mischief in it than people have yet reflected on. The National
Assembly has made the discovery, and it holds out the example to the world. Had
governments agreed to quarrel on purpose to fleece their countries by taxes,
they could not have succeeded better than they have done.
Everything
in the English government appears to me the reverse of what it ought to be, and
of what it is said to be. The Parliament, imperfectly and capriciously elected
as it is, is nevertheless supposed to hold the national purse in trust for the
nation; but in the manner in which an English Parliament is constructed it is
like a man being both mortgagor and mortgagee, and in the case of
misapplication of trust it is the criminal sitting in judgment upon himself. If
those who vote the supplies are the same persons who receive the supplies when
voted, and are to account for the expenditure of those supplies to those who
voted them, it is themselves accountable to themselves, and the Comedy of
Errors concludes with the pantomime of Hush. Neither the Ministerial party nor
the Opposition will touch upon this case. The national purse is the common hack
which each mounts upon. It is like what the country people call "Ride and
tie- you ride a little way, and then I."*[5] They order these things
better in France.
The French
Constitution says that the right of war and peace is in the nation. Where else
should it reside but in those who are to pay the expense?
In England
this right is said to reside in a metaphor shown at the Tower for sixpence or a
shilling a piece: so are the lions; and it would be a step nearer to reason to
say it resided in them, for any inanimate metaphor is no more than a hat or a
cap. We can all see the absurdity of worshipping Aaron's molten calf, or Nebuchadnezzar's
golden image; but why do men continue to practise themselves the absurdities
they despise in others?
It may with
reason be said that in the manner the English nation is represented it
signifies not where the right resides, whether in the Crown or in the
Parliament. War is the common harvest of all those who participate in the
division and expenditure of public money, in all countries. It is the art of
conquering at home; the object of it is an increase of revenue; and as revenue
cannot be increased without taxes, a pretence must be made for expenditure. In
reviewing the history of the English Government, its wars and its taxes, a
bystander, not blinded by prejudice nor warped by interest, would declare that
taxes were not raised to carry on wars, but that wars were raised to carry on
taxes.
Mr. Burke,
as a member of the House of Commons, is a part of the English Government; and
though he professes himself an enemy to war, he abuses the French Constitution,
which seeks to explode it. He holds up the English Government as a model, in
all its parts, to France; but he should first know the remarks which the French
make upon it. They contend in favor of their own, that the portion of liberty
enjoyed in England is just enough to enslave a country more productively than
by despotism, and that as the real object of all despotism is revenue, a
government so formed obtains more than it could do either by direct despotism,
or in a full state of freedom, and is, therefore on the ground of interest,
opposed to both. They account also for the readiness which always appears in
such governments for engaging in wars by remarking on the different motives
which produced them. In despotic governments wars are the effect of pride; but
in those governments in which they become the means of taxation, they acquire
thereby a more permanent promptitude.
The French
Constitution, therefore, to provide against both these evils, has taken away
the power of declaring war from kings and ministers, and placed the right where
the expense must fall.
When the
question of the right of war and peace was agitating in the National Assembly,
the people of England appeared to be much interested in the event, and highly
to applaud the decision. As a principle it applies as much to one country as
another. William the Conqueror, as a conqueror, held this power of war and
peace in himself, and his descendants have ever since claimed it under him as a
right.
Although
Mr. Burke has asserted the right of the Parliament at the Revolution to bind
and control the nation and posterity for ever, he denies at the same time that
the Parliament or the nation had any right to alter what he calls the
succession of the crown in anything but in part, or by a sort of modification.
By his taking this ground he throws the case back to the Norman Conquest, and
by thus running a line of succession springing from William the Conqueror to
the present day, he makes it necessary to enquire who and what William the
Conqueror was, and where he came from, and into the origin, history and nature
of what are called prerogatives. Everything must have had a beginning, and the
fog of time and antiquity should be penetrated to discover it. Let, then, Mr.
Burke bring forward his William of Normandy, for it is to this origin that his
argument goes. It also unfortunately happens, in running this line of
succession, that another line parallel thereto presents itself, which is that
if the succession runs in the line of the conquest, the nation runs in the line
of being conquered, and it ought to rescue itself from this reproach.
But it will
perhaps be said that though the power of declaring war descends in the heritage
of the conquest, it is held in check by the right of Parliament to withhold the
supplies. It will always happen when a thing is originally wrong that
amendments do not make it right, and it often happens that they do as much
mischief one way as good the other, and such is the case here, for if the one
rashly declares war as a matter of right, and the other peremptorily withholds
the supplies as a matter of right, the remedy becomes as bad, or worse, than
the disease. The one forces the nation to a combat, and the other ties its
hands; but the more probable issue is that the contest will end in a collusion
between the parties, and be made a screen to both.
On this
question of war, three things are to be considered. First, the right of
declaring it: secondly, the right of declaring it: secondly, the expense of
supporting it: thirdly, the mode of conducting it after it is declared. The
French Constitution places the right where the expense must fall, and this
union can only be in the nation. The mode of conducting it after it is
declared, it consigns to the executive department. Were this the case in all
countries, we should hear but little more of wars.
Before I
proceed to consider other parts of the French Constitution, and by way of
relieving the fatigue of argument, I will introduce an anecdote which I had
from Dr. Franklin.
While the Doctor
resided in France as Minister from America, during the war, he had numerous
proposals made to him by projectors of every country and of every kind, who
wished to go to the land that floweth with milk and honey, America; and among
the rest, there was one who offered himself to be king. He introduced his
proposal to the Doctor by letter, which is now in the hands of M. Beaumarchais,
of Paris- stating, first, that as the Americans had dismissed or sent away*[6]
their King, that they would want another. Secondly, that himself was a Norman.
Thirdly, that he was of a more ancient family than the Dukes of Normandy, and
of a more honorable descent, his line having never been bastardised. Fourthly,
that there was already a precedent in England of kings coming out of Normandy,
and on these grounds he rested his offer, enjoining that the Doctor would
forward it to America. But as the Doctor neither did this, nor yet sent him an
answer, the projector wrote a second letter, in which he did not, it is true,
threaten to go over and conquer America, but only with great dignity proposed
that if his offer was not accepted, an acknowledgment of about L30,000 might be
made to him for his generosity! Now, as all arguments respecting succession
must necessarily connect that succession with some beginning, Mr. Burke's
arguments on this subject go to show that there is no English origin of kings,
and that they are descendants of the Norman line in right of the Conquest. It
may, therefore, be of service to his doctrine to make this story known, and to
inform him, that in case of that natural extinction to which all mortality is
subject, Kings may again be had from Normandy, on more reasonable terms than
William the Conqueror; and consequently, that the good people of England, at the
revolution of 1688, might have done much better, had such a generous Norman as
this known their wants, and they had known his. The chivalric character which
Mr. Burke so much admires, is certainly much easier to make a bargain with than
a hard dealing Dutchman. But to return to the matters of the constitution-
The French
Constitution says, There shall be no titles; and, of consequence, all that
class of equivocal generation which in some countries is called
"aristocracy" and in others "nobility," is done away, and
the peer is exalted into the MAN.
Titles are
but nicknames, and every nickname is a title. The thing is perfectly harmless
in itself, but it marks a sort of foppery in the human character, which
degrades it. It reduces man into the diminutive of man in things which are
great, and the counterfeit of women in things which are little. It talks about
its fine blue ribbon like a girl, and shows its new garter like a child. A
certain writer, of some antiquity, says: "When I was a child, I thought as
a child; but when I became a man, I put away childish things."
It is,
properly, from the elevated mind of France that the folly of titles has fallen.
It has outgrown the baby clothes of Count and Duke, and breeched itself in
manhood. France has not levelled, it has exalted. It has put down the dwarf, to
set up the man. The punyism of a senseless word like Duke, Count or Earl has
ceased to please. Even those who possessed them have disowned the gibberish,
and as they outgrew the rickets, have despised the rattle. The genuine mind of
man, thirsting for its native home, society, contemns the gewgaws that separate
him from it. Titles are like circles drawn by the magician's wand, to contract
the sphere of man's felicity. He lives immured within the Bastille of a word,
and surveys at a distance the envied life of man.
Is it,
then, any wonder that titles should fall in France? Is it not a greater wonder
that they should be kept up anywhere? What are they? What is their worth, and
"what is their amount?" When we think or speak of a Judge or a
General, we associate with it the ideas of office and character; we think of
gravity in one and bravery in the other; but when we use the word merely as a
title, no ideas associate with it. Through all the vocabulary of Adam there is
not such an animal as a Duke or a Count; neither can we connect any certain
ideas with the words. Whether they mean strength or weakness, wisdom or folly,
a child or a man, or the rider or the horse, is all equivocal. What respect
then can be paid to that which describes nothing, and which means nothing?
Imagination has given figure and character to centaurs, satyrs, and down to all
the fairy tribe; but titles baffle even the powers of fancy, and are a
chimerical nondescript.
But this is
not all. If a whole country is disposed to hold them in contempt, all their
value is gone, and none will own them. It is common opinion only that makes
them anything, or nothing, or worse than nothing. There is no occasion to take
titles away, for they take themselves away when society concurs to ridicule
them. This species of imaginary consequence has visibly declined in every part
of Europe, and it hastens to its exit as the world of reason continues to rise.
There was a time when the lowest class of what are called nobility was more
thought of than the highest is now, and when a man in armour riding throughout
Christendom in quest of adventures was more stared at than a modern Duke. The
world has seen this folly fall, and it has fallen by being laughed at, and the
farce of titles will follow its fate. The patriots of France have discovered in
good time that rank and dignity in society must take a new ground. The old one
has fallen through. It must now take the substantial ground of character,
instead of the chimerical ground of titles; and they have brought their titles
to the altar, and made of them a burnt-offering to Reason.
If no
mischief had annexed itself to the folly of titles they would not have been
worth a serious and formal destruction, such as the National Assembly have
decreed them; and this makes it necessary to enquire farther into the nature
and character of aristocracy.
That, then,
which is called aristocracy in some countries and nobility in others arose out
of the governments founded upon conquest. It was originally a military order
for the purpose of supporting military government (for such were all
governments founded in conquest); and to keep up a succession of this order for
the purpose for which it was established, all the younger branches of those
families were disinherited and the law of primogenitureship set up.
The nature
and character of aristocracy shows itself to us in this law. It is the law
against every other law of nature, and Nature herself calls for its
destruction. Establish family justice, and aristocracy falls. By the
aristocratical law of primogenitureship, in a family of six children five are
exposed. Aristocracy has never more than one child. The rest are begotten to be
devoured. They are thrown to the cannibal for prey, and the natural parent
prepares the unnatural repast.
As
everything which is out of nature in man affects, more or less, the interest of
society, so does this. All the children which the aristocracy disowns (which
are all except the eldest) are, in general, cast like orphans on a parish, to
be provided for by the public, but at a greater charge. Unnecessary offices and
places in governments and courts are created at the expense of the public to
maintain them.
With what
kind of parental reflections can the father or mother contemplate their younger
offspring? By nature they are children, and by marriage they are heirs; but by
aristocracy they are bastards and orphans. They are the flesh and blood of
their parents in the one line, and nothing akin to them in the other. To
restore, therefore, parents to their children, and children to their parents-
relations to each other, and man to society- and to exterminate the monster
aristocracy, root and branch- the French Constitution has destroyed the law of
PRIMOGENITURESHIP. Here then lies the monster; and Mr. Burke, if he pleases,
may write its epitaph.
Hitherto we
have considered aristocracy chiefly in one point of view. We have now to
consider it in another. But whether we view it before or behind, or sideways,
or any way else, domestically or publicly, it is still a monster.
In France
aristocracy had one feature less in its countenance than what it has in some
other countries. It did not compose a body of hereditary legislators. It was
not "'a corporation of aristocracy, for such I have heard M. de la Fayette
describe an English House of Peers. Let us then examine the grounds upon which
the French Constitution has resolved against having such a House in France.
Because, in
the first place, as is already mentioned, aristocracy is kept up by family
tyranny and injustice.
Secondly.
Because there is an unnatural unfitness in an aristocracy to be legislators for
a nation. Their ideas of distributive justice are corrupted at the very source.
They begin life by trampling on all their younger brothers and sisters, and
relations of every kind, and are taught and educated so to do. With what ideas
of justice or honour can that man enter a house of legislation, who absorbs in
his own person the inheritance of a whole family of children or doles out to
them some pitiful portion with the insolence of a gift?
Thirdly.
Because the idea of hereditary legislators is as inconsistent as that of
hereditary judges, or hereditary juries; and as absurd as an hereditary
mathematician, or an hereditary wise man; and as ridiculous as an hereditary
poet laureate.
Fourthly.
Because a body of men, holding themselves accountable to nobody, ought not to
be trusted by anybody.
Fifthly.
Because it is continuing the uncivilised principle of governments founded in
conquest, and the base idea of man having property in man, and governing him by
personal right.
Sixthly.
Because aristocracy has a tendency to deteriorate the human species. By the
universal economy of nature it is known, and by the instance of the Jews it is
proved, that the human species has a tendency to degenerate, in any small
number of persons, when separated from the general stock of society, and
inter-marrying constantly with each other. It defeats even its pretended end,
and becomes in time the opposite of what is noble in man. Mr. Burke talks of
nobility; let him show what it is. The greatest characters the world have known
have arisen on the democratic floor. Aristocracy has not been able to keep a
proportionate pace with democracy. The artificial NOBLE shrinks into a dwarf
before the NOBLE of Nature; and in the few instances of those (for there are
some in all countries) in whom nature, as by a miracle, has survived in
aristocracy, THOSE MEN DESPISE IT.- But it is time to proceed to a new subject.
The French
Constitution has reformed the condition of the clergy. It has raised the income
of the lower and middle classes, and taken from the higher. None are now less
than twelve hundred livres (fifty pounds sterling), nor any higher than two or
three thousand pounds. What will Mr. Burke place against this? Hear what he
says.
He says:
"That the people of England can see without pain or grudging, an
archbishop precede a duke; they can see a Bishop of Durham, or a Bishop of
Winchester in possession of L10,000 a-year; and cannot see why it is in worse
hands than estates to a like amount, in the hands of this earl or that
squire." And Mr. Burke offers this as an example to France.
As to the
first part, whether the archbishop precedes the duke, or the duke the bishop,
it is, I believe, to the people in general, somewhat like Sternhold and
Hopkins, or Hopkins and Sternhold; you may put which you please first; and as I
confess that I do not understand the merits of this case, I will not contest it
with Mr. Burke.
But with
respect to the latter, I have something to say. Mr. Burke has not put the case
right. The comparison is out of order, by being put between the bishop and the
earl or the squire. It ought to be put between the bishop and the curate, and
then it will stand thus:- "The people of England can see without pain or
grudging, a Bishop of Durham, or a Bishop of Winchester, in possession of ten
thousand pounds a-year, and a curate on thirty or forty pounds a-year, or
less." No, sir, they certainly do not see those things without great pain
or grudging. It is a case that applies itself to every man's sense of justice,
and is one among many that calls aloud for a constitution.
In France
the cry of "the church! the church!" was repeated as often as in Mr.
Burke's book, and as loudly as when the Dissenters' Bill was before the English
Parliament; but the generality of the French clergy were not to be deceived by
this cry any longer. They knew that whatever the pretence might be, it was they
who were one of the principal objects of it. It was the cry of the high
beneficed clergy, to prevent any regulation of income taking place between
those of ten thousand pounds a-year and the parish priest. They therefore
joined their case to those of every other oppressed class of men, and by this
union obtained redress.
The French
Constitution has abolished tythes, that source of perpetual discontent between
the tythe-holder and the parishioner. When land is held on tythe, it is in the
condition of an estate held between two parties; the one receiving one-tenth,
and the other nine-tenths of the produce: and consequently, on principles of
equity, if the estate can be improved, and made to produce by that improvement
double or treble what it did before, or in any other ratio, the expense of such
improvement ought to be borne in like proportion between the parties who are to
share the produce. But this is not the case in tythes: the farmer bears the
whole expense, and the tythe-holder takes a tenth of the improvement, in
addition to the original tenth, and by this means gets the value of two-tenths
instead of one. This is another case that calls for a constitution.
The French
Constitution hath abolished or renounced Toleration and Intolerance also, and
hath established UNIVERSAL RIGHT OF CONSCIENCE.
Toleration
is not the opposite of Intolerance, but is the counterfeit of it. Both are
despotisms. The one assumes to itself the right of withholding Liberty of
Conscience, and the other of granting it. The one is the Pope armed with fire
and faggot, and the other is the Pope selling or granting indulgences. The
former is church and state, and the latter is church and traffic.
But
Toleration may be viewed in a much stronger light. Man worships not himself,
but his Maker; and the liberty of conscience which he claims is not for the
service of himself, but of his God. In this case, therefore, we must
necessarily have the associated idea of two things; the mortal who renders the
worship, and the IMMORTAL BEING who is worshipped. Toleration, therefore,
places itself, not between man and man, nor between church and church, nor
between one denomination of religion and another, but between God and man;
between the being who worships, and the BEING who is worshipped; and by the
same act of assumed authority which it tolerates man to pay his worship, it
presumptuously and blasphemously sets itself up to tolerate the Almighty to
receive it.
Were a bill
brought into any Parliament, entitled, "An Act to tolerate or grant liberty
to the Almighty to receive the worship of a Jew or Turk," or "to
prohibit the Almighty from receiving it," all men would startle and call
it blasphemy. There would be an uproar. The presumption of toleration in
religious matters would then present itself unmasked; but the presumption is
not the less because the name of "Man" only appears to those laws,
for the associated idea of the worshipper and the worshipped cannot be
separated. Who then art thou, vain dust and ashes! by whatever name thou art called,
whether a King, a Bishop, a Church, or a State, a Parliament, or anything else,
that obtrudest thine insignificance between the soul of man and its Maker? Mind
thine own concerns. If he believes not as thou believest, it is a proof that
thou believest not as he believes, and there is no earthly power can determine
between you.
With
respect to what are called denominations of religion, if every one is left to
judge of its own religion, there is no such thing as a religion that is wrong;
but if they are to judge of each other's religion, there is no such thing as a
religion that is right; and therefore all the world is right, or all the world
is wrong. But with respect to religion itself, without regard to names, and as
directing itself from the universal family of mankind to the Divine object of
all adoration, it is man bringing to his Maker the fruits of his heart; and
though those fruits may differ from each other like the fruits of the earth,
the grateful tribute of every one is accepted.
A Bishop of
Durham, or a Bishop of Winchester, or the archbishop who heads the dukes, will
not refuse a tythe-sheaf of wheat because it is not a cock of hay, nor a cock
of hay because it is not a sheaf of wheat; nor a pig, because it is neither one
nor the other; but these same persons, under the figure of an established
church, will not permit their Maker to receive the varied tythes of man's
devotion.
One of the
continual choruses of Mr. Burke's book is "Church and State." He does
not mean some one particular church, or some one particular state, but any
church and state; and he uses the term as a general figure to hold forth the
political doctrine of always uniting the church with the state in every
country, and he censures the National Assembly for not having done this in
France. Let us bestow a few thoughts on this subject.
All
religions are in their nature kind and benign, and united with principles of
morality. They could not have made proselytes at first by professing anything
that was vicious, cruel, persecuting, or immoral. Like everything else, they
had their beginning; and they proceeded by persuasion, exhortation, and
example. How then is it that they lose their native mildness, and become morose
and intolerant?
It proceeds
from the connection which Mr. Burke recommends. By engendering the church with
the state, a sort of mule-animal, capable only of destroying, and not of
breeding up, is produced, called the Church established by Law. It is a
stranger, even from its birth, to any parent mother, on whom it is begotten,
and whom in time it kicks out and destroys.
The
inquisition in Spain does not proceed from the religion originally professed,
but from this mule-animal, engendered between the church and the state. The
burnings in Smithfield proceeded from the same heterogeneous production; and it
was the regeneration of this strange animal in England afterwards, that renewed
rancour and irreligion among the inhabitants, and that drove the people called
Quakers and Dissenters to America. Persecution is not an original feature in
any religion; but it is alway the strongly-marked feature of all law-religions,
or religions established by law. Take away the law-establishment, and every
religion re-assumes its original benignity. In America, a catholic priest is a
good citizen, a good character, and a good neighbour; an episcopalian minister
is of the same description: and this proceeds independently of the men, from
there being no law-establishment in America.
If also we
view this matter in a temporal sense, we shall see the ill effects it has had
on the prosperity of nations. The union of church and state has impoverished
Spain. The revoking the edict of Nantes drove the silk manufacture from that
country into England; and church and state are now driving the cotton
manufacture from England to America and France. Let then Mr. Burke continue to
preach his antipolitical doctrine of Church and State. It will do some good.
The National Assembly will not follow his advice, but will benefit by his
folly. It was by observing the ill effects of it in England, that America has
been warned against it; and it is by experiencing them in France, that the
National Assembly have abolished it, and, like America, have established
UNIVERSAL RIGHT OF CONSCIENCE, AND UNIVERSAL RIGHT OF CITIZENSHIP.*[7]
I will here
cease the comparison with respect to the principles of the French Constitution,
and conclude this part of the subject with a few observations on the
organisation of the formal parts of the French and English governments.
The
executive power in each country is in the hands of a person styled the King;
but the French Constitution distinguishes between the King and the Sovereign:
It considers the station of King as official, and places Sovereignty in the
nation.
The
representatives of the nation, who compose the National Assembly, and who are
the legislative power, originate in and from the people by election, as an
inherent right in the people.- In England it is otherwise; and this arises from
the original establishment of what is called its monarchy; for, as by the
conquest all the rights of the people or the nation were absorbed into the
hands of the Conqueror, and who added the title of King to that of Conqueror,
those same matters which in France are now held as rights in the people, or in
the nation, are held in England as grants from what is called the crown. The
Parliament in England, in both its branches, was erected by patents from the
descendants of the Conqueror. The House of Commons did not originate as a
matter of right in the people to delegate or elect, but as a grant or boon.
By the
French Constitution the nation is always named before the king. The third
article of the declaration of rights says: "The nation is essentially the
source (or fountain) of all sovereignty." Mr. Burke argues that in England
a king is the fountain- that he is the fountain of all honour. But as this idea
is evidently descended from the conquest I shall make no other remark upon it,
than that it is the nature of conquest to turn everything upside down; and as
Mr. Burke will not be refused the privilege of speaking twice, and as there are
but two parts in the figure, the fountain and the spout, he will be right the
second time.
The French
Constitution puts the legislative before the executive, the law before the
king; la loi, le roi. This also is in the natural order of things, because laws
must have existence before they can have execution.
A king in
France does not, in addressing himself to the National Assembly, say, "My
Assembly," similar to the phrase used in England of my
"Parliament"; neither can he use it consistently with the
constitution, nor could it be admitted. There may be propriety in the use of it
in England, because as is before mentioned, both Houses of Parliament originated
from what is called the crown by patent
or boon- and not from the inherent rights of the people, as the National
Assembly does in France, and whose name designates its origin.
The
President of the National Assembly does not ask the King to grant to the
Assembly liberty of speech, as is the case with the English House of Commons.
The constitutional dignity of the National Assembly cannot debase itself.
Speech is, in the first place, one of the natural rights of man always
retained; and with respect to the National Assembly the use of it is their
duty, and the nation is their authority. They were elected by the greatest body
of men exercising the right of election the European world ever saw. They
sprung not from the filth of rotten boroughs, nor are they the vassal
representatives of aristocratical ones. Feeling the proper dignity of their
character they support it. Their Parliamentary language, whether for or against
a question, is free, bold and manly, and extends to all the parts and
circumstances of the case. If any matter or subject respecting the executive
department or the person who presides in it (the king) comes before them it is
debated on with the spirit of men, and in the language of gentlemen; and their
answer or their address is returned in the same style. They stand not aloof
with the gaping vacuity of vulgar ignorance, nor bend with the cringe of
sycophantic insignificance. The graceful pride of truth knows no extremes, and
preserves, in every latitude of life, the right-angled character of man.
Let us now
look to the other side of the question. In the addresses of the English
Parliaments to their kings we see neither the intrepid spirit of the old
Parliaments of France, nor the serene dignity of the present National Assembly;
neither do we see in them anything of the style of English manners, which
border somewhat on bluntness. Since then they are neither of foreign
extraction, nor naturally of English production, their origin must be sought
for elsewhere, and that origin is the Norman Conquest. They are evidently of
the vassalage class of manners, and emphatically mark the prostrate distance
that exists in no other condition of men than between the conqueror and the
conquered. That this vassalage idea and style of speaking was not got rid of
even at the Revolution of 1688, is evident from the declaration of Parliament
to William and Mary in these words: "We do most humbly and faithfully
submit ourselves, our heirs and posterities, for ever." Submission is
wholly a vassalage term, repugnant to the dignity of freedom, and an echo of
the language used at the Conquest.
As the
estimation of all things is given by comparison, the Revolution of 1688,
however from circumstances it may have been exalted beyond its value, will find
its level. It is already on the wane, eclipsed by the enlarging orb of reason,
and the luminous revolutions of America and France. In less than another
century it will go, as well as Mr. Burke's labours, "to the family vault
of all the Capulets." Mankind will then scarcely believe that a country
calling itself free would send to Holland for a man, and clothe him with power
on purpose to put themselves in fear of him, and give him almost a million
sterling a year for leave to submit themselves and their posterity, like bondmen
and bondwomen, for ever.
But there
is a truth that ought to be made known; I have had the opportunity of seeing
it; which is, that notwithstanding appearances, there is not any description of
men that despise monarchy so much as courtiers. But they well know, that if it
were seen by others, as it is seen by them, the juggle could not be kept up;
they are in the condition of men who get their living by a show, and to whom
the folly of that show is so familiar that they ridicule it; but were the
audience to be made as wise in this respect as themselves, there would be an
end to the show and the profits with it. The difference between a republican
and a courtier with respect to monarchy, is that the one opposes monarchy,
believing it to be something; and the other laughs at it, knowing it to be
nothing.
As I used
sometimes to correspond with Mr. Burke believing him then to be a man of
sounder principles than his book shows him to be, I wrote to him last winter
from Paris, and gave him an account how prosperously matters were going on.
Among other subjects in that letter, I referred to the happy situation the
National Assembly were placed in; that they had taken ground on which their
moral duty and their political interest were united. They have not to hold out
a language which they do not themselves believe, for the fraudulent purpose of
making others believe it. Their station requires no artifice to support it, and
can only be maintained by enlightening mankind. It is not their interest to
cherish ignorance, but to dispel it. They are not in the case of a ministerial
or an opposition party in England, who, though they are opposed, are still
united to keep up the common mystery. The National Assembly must throw open a
magazine of light. It must show man the proper character of man; and the nearer
it can bring him to that standard, the stronger the National Assembly becomes.
In
contemplating the French Constitution, we see in it a rational order of things.
The principles harmonise with the forms, and both with their origin. It may
perhaps be said as an excuse for bad forms, that they are nothing more than
forms; but this is a mistake. Forms grow out of principles, and operate to
continue the principles they grow from. It is impossible to practise a bad form
on anything but a bad principle. It cannot be ingrafted on a good one; and
wherever the forms in any government are bad, it is a certain indication that
the principles are bad also.
I will here
finally close this subject. I began it by remarking that Mr. Burke had
voluntarily declined going into a comparison of the English and French
Constitutions. He apologises (in page 241) for not doing it, by saying that he
had not time. Mr. Burke's book was upwards of eight months in hand, and is
extended to a volume of three hundred and sixty-six pages. As his omission does
injury to his cause, his apology makes it worse; and men on the English side of
the water will begin to consider, whether there is not some radical defect in
what is called the English constitution, that made it necessary for Mr. Burke
to suppress the comparison, to avoid bringing it into view.
As Mr.
Burke has not written on constitutions so neither has he written on the French
Revolution. He gives no account of its commencement or its progress. He only
expresses his wonder. "It looks," says he, "to me, as if I were
in a great crisis, not of the affairs of France alone, but of all Europe,
perhaps of more than Europe. All circumstances taken together, the French
Revolution is the most astonishing that has hitherto happened in the
world."
As wise men
are astonished at foolish things, and other people at wise ones, I know not on
which ground to account for Mr. Burke's astonishment; but certain it is, that
he does not understand the French Revolution. It has apparently burst forth
like a creation from a chaos, but it is no more than the consequence of a
mental revolution priorily existing in France. The mind of the nation had
changed beforehand, and the new order of things has naturally followed the new
order of thoughts. I will here, as concisely as I can, trace out the growth of
the French Revolution, and mark the circumstances that have contributed to
produce it.
The
despotism of Louis XIV., united with the gaiety of his Court, and the gaudy
ostentation of his character, had so humbled, and at the same time so
fascinated the mind of France, that the people appeared to have lost all sense
of their own dignity, in contemplating that of their Grand Monarch; and the
whole reign of Louis XV., remarkable only for weakness and effeminacy, made no
other alteration than that of spreading a sort of lethargy over the nation,
from which it showed no disposition to rise.
The only
signs which appeared to the spirit of Liberty during those periods, are to be
found in the writings of the French philosophers. Montesquieu, President of the
Parliament of Bordeaux, went as far as a writer under a despotic government
could well proceed; and being obliged to divide himself between principle and
prudence, his mind often appears under a veil, and we ought to give him credit
for more than he has expressed.
Voltaire,
who was both the flatterer and the satirist of despotism, took another line.
His forte lay in exposing and ridiculing the superstitions which priest-craft,
united with state-craft, had interwoven with governments. It was not from the
purity of his principles, or his love of mankind (for satire and philanthropy
are not naturally concordant), but from his strong capacity of seeing folly in
its true shape, and his irresistible propensity to expose it, that he made
those attacks. They were, however, as formidable as if the motive had been
virtuous; and he merits the thanks rather than the esteem of mankind.
On the
contrary, we find in the writings of Rousseau, and the Abbe Raynal, a
loveliness of sentiment in favour of liberty, that excites respect, and
elevates the human faculties; but having raised this animation, they do not
direct its operation, and leave the mind in love with an object, without
describing the means of possessing it.
The
writings of Quesnay, Turgot, and the friends of those authors, are of the
serious kind; but they laboured under the same disadvantage with Montesquieu;
their writings abound with moral maxims of government, but are rather directed
to economise and reform the administration of the government, than the
government itself.
But all
those writings and many others had their weight; and by the different manner in
which they treated the subject of government, Montesquieu by his judgment and
knowledge of laws, Voltaire by his wit, Rousseau and Raynal by their animation,
and Quesnay and Turgot by their moral maxims and systems of economy, readers of
every class met with something to their taste, and a spirit of political
inquiry began to diffuse itself through the nation at the time the dispute
between England and the then colonies of America broke out.
In the war
which France afterwards engaged in, it is very well known that the nation appeared
to be before-hand with the French ministry. Each of them had its view; but
those views were directed to different objects; the one sought liberty, and the
other retaliation on England. The French officers and soldiers who after this
went to America, were eventually placed in the school of Freedom, and learned
the practice as well as the principles of it by heart.
As it was
impossible to separate the military events which took place in America from the
principles of the American Revolution, the publication of those events in
France necessarily connected themselves with the principles which produced
them. Many of the facts were in themselves principles; such as the declaration
of American Independence, and the treaty of alliance between France and America,
which recognised the natural rights of man, and justified resistance to
oppression.
The then
Minister of France, Count Vergennes, was not the friend of America; and it is
both justice and gratitude to say, that it was the Queen of France who gave the
cause of America a fashion at the French Court. Count Vergennes was the
personal and social friend of Dr. Franklin; and the Doctor had obtained, by his
sensible gracefulness, a sort of influence over him; but with respect to
principles Count Vergennes was a despot.
The
situation of Dr. Franklin, as Minister from America to France, should be taken
into the chain of circumstances. The diplomatic character is of itself the
narrowest sphere of society that man can act in. It forbids intercourse by the
reciprocity of suspicion; and a diplomatic is a sort of unconnected atom,
continually repelling and repelled. But this was not the case with Dr.
Franklin. He was not the diplomatic of a Court, but of MAN. His character as a
philosopher had been long established, and his circle of society in France was
universal.
Count
Vergennes resisted for a considerable time the publication in France of
American constitutions, translated into the French language: but even in this
he was obliged to give way to public opinion, and a sort of propriety in
admitting to appear what he had undertaken to defend. The American
constitutions were to liberty what a grammar is to language: they define its
parts of speech, and practically construct them into syntax.
The
peculiar situation of the then Marquis de la Fayette is another link in the
great chain. He served in America as an American officer under a commission of
Congress, and by the universality of his acquaintance was in close friendship
with the civil government of America, as well as with the military line. He
spoke the language of the country, entered into the discussions on the
principles of government, and was always a welcome friend at any election.
When the
war closed, a vast reinforcement to the cause of Liberty spread itself over
France, by the return of the French officers and soldiers. A knowledge of the
practice was then joined to the theory; and all that was wanting to give it
real existence was opportunity. Man cannot, properly speaking, make
circumstances for his purpose, but he always has it in his power to improve
them when they occur, and this was the case in France.
M. Neckar
was displaced in May, 1781; and by the ill-management of the finances
afterwards, and particularly during the extravagant administration of M.
Calonne, the revenue of France, which was nearly twenty-four millions sterling
per year, was become unequal to the expenditure, not because the revenue had
decreased, but because the expenses had increased; and this was a circumstance
which the nation laid hold of to bring forward a Revolution. The English
Minister, Mr. Pitt, has frequently alluded to the state of the French finances
in his budgets, without understanding the subject. Had the French Parliaments
been as ready to register edicts for new taxes as an English Parliament is to
grant them, there had been no derangement in the finances, nor yet any
Revolution; but this will better explain itself as I proceed.
It will be
necessary here to show how taxes were formerly raised in France. The King, or
rather the Court or Ministry acting under the use of that name, framed the
edicts for taxes at their own discretion, and sent them to the Parliaments to
be registered; for until they were registered by the Parliaments they were not
operative. Disputes had long existed between. the Court and the Parliaments
with respect to the extent of the Parliament's authority on this head. The
Court insisted that the authority of Parliaments went no farther than to
remonstrate or show reasons against the tax, reserving to itself the right of
determining whether the reasons were well or ill-founded; and in consequence
thereof, either to withdraw the edict as a matter of choice, or to order it to
be unregistered as a matter of authority. The Parliaments on their part insisted
that they had not only a right to remonstrate, but to reject; and on this
ground they were always supported by the nation.
But to
return to the order of my narrative. M. Calonne wanted money: and as he knew
the sturdy disposition of the Parliaments with respect to new taxes, he
ingeniously sought either to approach them by a more gentle means than that of
direct authority, or to get over their heads by a manoeuvre; and for this
purpose he revived the project of assembling a body of men from the several
provinces, under the style of an "Assembly of the Notables," or men
of note, who met in 1787, and who were either to recommend taxes to the
Parliaments, or to act as a Parliament themselves. An Assembly under this name
had been called in 1617.
As we are
to view this as the first practical step towards the Revolution, it will be
proper to enter into some particulars respecting it. The Assembly of the
Notables has in some places been mistaken for the States-General, but was
wholly a different body, the States-General being always by election. The
persons who composed the Assembly of the Notables were all nominated by the
king, and consisted of one hundred and forty members. But as M. Calonne could
not depend upon a majority of this Assembly in his favour, he very ingeniously
arranged them in such a manner as to make forty-four a majority of one hundred
and forty; to effect this he disposed of them into seven separate committees,
of twenty members each. Every general question was to be decided, not by a majority
of persons, but by a majority of committee, and as eleven votes would make a
majority in a committee, and four committees a majority of seven, M. Calonne
had good reason to conclude that as forty-four would determine any general
question he could not be outvoted. But all his plans deceived him, and in the
event became his overthrow.
The then
Marquis de la Fayette was placed in the second committee, of which the Count
D'Artois was president, and as money matters were the object, it naturally
brought into view every circumstance connected with it. M. de la Fayette made a
verbal charge against Calonne for selling crown lands to the amount of two
millions of livres, in a manner that appeared to be unknown to the king. The
Count D'Artois (as if to intimidate, for the Bastille was then in being) asked
the Marquis if he would render the charge in writing? He replied that he would.
The Count D'Artois did not demand it, but brought a message from the king to
that purport. M. de la Fayette then delivered in his charge in writing, to be
given to the king, undertaking to support it. No farther proceedings were had
upon this affair, but M. Calonne was soon after dismissed by the king and set
off to England.
As M. de la
Fayette, from the experience of what he had seen in America, was better
acquainted with the science of civil government than the generality of the
members who composed the Assembly of the Notables could then be, the brunt of
the business fell considerably to his share. The plan of those who had a constitution
in view was to contend with the Court on the ground of taxes, and some of them
openly professed their object. Disputes frequently arose between Count D'Artois
and M. de la Fayette upon various subjects. With respect to the arrears already
incurred the latter proposed to remedy them by accommodating the expenses to
the revenue instead of the revenue to the expenses; and as objects of reform he
proposed to abolish the Bastille and all the State prisons throughout the
nation (the keeping of which was attended with great expense), and to suppress
Lettres de Cachet; but those matters were not then much attended to, and with
respect to Lettres de Cachet, a majority of the Nobles appeared to be in favour
of them.
On the
subject of supplying the Treasury by new taxes the Assembly declined taking the
matter on themselves, concurring in the opinion that they had not authority. In
a debate on this subject M. de la Fayette said that raising money by taxes
could only be done by a National Assembly, freely elected by the people, and
acting as their representatives. Do you mean, said the Count D'Artois, the
States-General? M. de la Fayette replied that he did. Will you, said the Count
D'Artois, sign what you say to be given to the king? The other replied that he would
not only do this but that he would go farther, and say that the effectual mode
would be for the king to agree to the establishment of a constitution.
As one of
the plans had thus failed, that of getting the Assembly to act as a Parliament,
the other came into view, that of recommending. On this subject the Assembly
agreed to recommend two new taxes to be unregistered by the Parliament: the one
a stamp-tax and the other a territorial tax, or sort of land-tax. The two have
been estimated at about five millions sterling per annum. We have now to turn
our attention to the Parliaments, on whom the business was again devolving.
The
Archbishop of Thoulouse (since Archbishop of Sens, and now a Cardinal), was
appointed to the administration of the finances soon after the dismission of
Calonne. He was also made Prime Minister, an office that did not always exist
in France. When this office did not exist, the chief of each of the principal
departments transacted business immediately with the King, but when a Prime
Minister was appointed they did business only with him. The Archbishop arrived
to more state authority than any minister since the Duke de Choiseul, and the
nation was strongly disposed in his favour; but by a line of conduct scarcely
to be accounted for he perverted every opportunity, turned out a despot, and
sunk into disgrace, and a Cardinal.
The
Assembly of the Notables having broken up, the minister sent the edicts for the
two new taxes recommended by the Assembly to the Parliaments to be unregistered.
They of course came first before the Parliament of Paris, who returned for
answer: "that with such a revenue as the nation then supported the name of
taxes ought not to be mentioned but for the purpose of reducing them"; and
threw both the edicts out.*[8] On this refusal the Parliament was ordered to
Versailles, where, in the usual form, the King held what under the old
government was called a Bed of justice; and the two edicts were unregistered in
presence of the Parliament by an order of State, in the manner mentioned,
earlier. On this the Parliament immediately returned to Paris, renewed their
session in form, and ordered the enregistering to be struck out, declaring that
everything done at Versailles was illegal. All the members of the Parliament were
then served with Lettres de Cachet, and exiled to Troyes; but as they continued
as inflexible in exile as before, and as vengeance did not supply the place of
taxes, they were after a short time recalled to Paris.
The edicts
were again tendered to them, and the Count D'Artois undertook to act as
representative of the King. For this purpose he came from Versailles to Paris,
in a train of procession; and the Parliament were assembled to receive him. But
show and parade had lost their influence in France; and whatever ideas of
importance he might set off with, he had to return with those of mortification
and disappointment. On alighting from his carriage to ascend the steps of the
Parliament House, the crowd (which was numerously collected) threw out trite expressions,
saying: "This is Monsieur D'Artois, who wants more of our money to
spend." The marked disapprobation which he saw impressed him with
apprehensions, and the word Aux armes! (To arms!) was given out by the officer
of the guard who attended him. It was so loudly vociferated, that it echoed
through the avenues of the house, and produced a temporary confusion. I was
then standing in one of the apartments through which he had to pass, and could
not avoid reflecting how wretched was the condition of a disrespected man.
He
endeavoured to impress the Parliament by great words, and opened his authority
by saying, "The King, our Lord and Master." The Parliament received
him very coolly, and with their usual determination not to register the taxes:
and in this manner the interview ended.
After this
a new subject took place: In the various debates and contests which arose
between the Court and the Parliaments on the subject of taxes, the Parliament
of Paris at last declared that although it had been customary for Parliaments
to enregister edicts for taxes as a matter of convenience, the right belonged
only to the States-General; and that, therefore, the Parliament could no longer
with propriety continue to debate on what it had not authority to act. The King
after this came to Paris and held a meeting with the Parliament, in which he
continued from ten in the morning till about six in the evening, and, in a
manner that appeared to proceed from him as if unconsulted upon with the
Cabinet or Ministry, gave his word to the Parliament that the States-General
should be convened.
But after
this another scene arose, on a ground different from all the former. The
Minister and the Cabinet were averse to calling the States-General. They well
knew that if the States-General were assembled, themselves must fall; and as
the King had not mentioned any time, they hit on a project calculated to elude,
without appearing to oppose.
For this
purpose, the Court set about making a sort of constitution itself. It was
principally the work of M. Lamoignon, the Keeper of the Seals, who afterwards
shot himself. This new arrangement consisted in establishing a body under the
name of a Cour Pleniere, or Full Court, in which were invested all the powers
that the Government might have occasion to make use of. The persons composing
this Court were to be nominated by the King; the contended right of taxation
was given up on the part of the King, and a new criminal code of laws and law
proceedings was substituted in the room of the former. The thing, in many
points, contained better principles than those upon which the Government had
hitherto been administered; but with respect to the Cour Pleniere, it was no
other than a medium through which despotism was to pass, without appearing to
act directly from itself.
The Cabinet
had high expectations from their new contrivance. The people who were to
compose the Cour Pleniere were already nominated; and as it was necessary to
carry a fair appearance, many of the best characters in the nation were appointed
among the number. It was to commence on May 8, 1788; but an opposition arose to
it on two grounds- the one as to principle, the other as to form.
On the
ground of Principle it was contended that Government had not a right to alter
itself, and that if the practice was once admitted it would grow into a
principle and be made a precedent for any future alterations the Government
might wish to establish: that the right of altering the Government was a
national right, and not a right of Government. And on the ground of form it was
contended that the Cour Pleniere was nothing more than a larger Cabinet.
The then
Duke de la Rochefoucault, Luxembourg, De Noailles, and many others, refused to
accept the nomination, and strenuously opposed the whole plan. When the edict
for establishing this new court was sent to the Parliaments to be unregistered
and put into execution, they resisted also. The Parliament of Paris not only
refused, but denied the authority; and the contest renewed itself between the
Parliament and the Cabinet more strongly than ever. While the Parliament were
sitting in debate on this subject, the Ministry ordered a regiment of soldiers
to surround the House and form a blockade. The members sent out for beds and
provisions, and lived as in a besieged citadel: and as this had no effect, the
commanding officer was ordered to enter the Parliament House and seize them,
which he did, and some of the principal members were shut up in different
prisons. About the same time a deputation of persons arrived from the province
of Brittany to remonstrate against the establishment of the Cour Pleniere, and
those the archbishop sent to the Bastille. But the spirit of the nation was not
to be overcome, and it was so fully sensible of the strong ground it had taken-
that of withholding taxes- that it contented itself with keeping up a sort of
quiet resistance, which effectually overthrew all the plans at that time formed
against it. The project of the Cour Pleniere was at last obliged to be given
up, and the Prime Minister not long afterwards followed its fate, and M. Neckar
was recalled into office.
The attempt
to establish the Cour Pleniere had an effect upon the nation which itself did
not perceive. It was a sort of new form of government that insensibly served to
put the old one out of sight and to unhinge it from the superstitious authority
of antiquity. It was Government dethroning Government; and the old one, by
attempting to make a new one, made a chasm.
The failure
of this scheme renewed the subject of convening the State-General; and this
gave rise to a new series of politics. There was no settled form for convening
the States-General: all that it positively meant was a deputation from what was
then called the Clergy, the Noblesse, and the Commons; but their numbers or
their proportions had not been always the same. They had been convened only on
extraordinary occasions, the last of which was in 1614; their numbers were then
in equal proportions, and they voted by orders.
It could
not well escape the sagacity of M. Neckar, that the mode of 1614 would answer
neither the purpose of the then government nor of the nation. As matters were
at that time circumstanced it would have been too contentious to agree upon
anything. The debates would have been endless upon privileges and exemptions,
in which neither the wants of the Government nor the wishes of the nation for a
Constitution would have been attended to. But as he did not choose to take the
decision upon himself, he summoned again the Assembly of the Notables and
referred it to them. This body was in general interested in the decision, being
chiefly of aristocracy and high-paid clergy, and they decided in favor of the
mode of 1614. This decision was against the sense of the Nation, and also
against the wishes of the Court; for the aristocracy opposed itself to both and
contended for privileges independent of either. The subject was then taken up
by the Parliament, who recommended that the number of the Commons should be
equal to the other two: and they should all sit in one house and vote in one
body. The number finally determined on was 1,200; 600 to be chosen by the
Commons (and this was less than their proportion ought to have been when their
worth and consequence is considered on a national scale), 300 by the Clergy,
and 300 by the Aristocracy; but with respect to the mode of assembling
themselves, whether together or apart, or the manner in which they should vote,
those matters were referred.*[9]
The
election that followed was not a contested election, but an animated one. The
candidates were not men, but principles. Societies were formed in Paris, and
committees of correspondence and communication established throughout the
nation, for the purpose of enlightening the people, and explaining to them the
principles of civil government; and so orderly was the election conducted, that
it did not give rise even to the rumour of tumult.
The
States-General were to meet at Versailles in April 1789, but did not assemble till
May. They situated themselves in three separate chambers, or rather the Clergy
and Aristocracy withdrew each into a separate chamber. The majority of the
Aristocracy claimed what they called the privilege of voting as a separate
body, and of giving their consent or their negative in that manner; and many of
the bishops and the high-beneficed clergy claimed the same privilege on the
part of their Order.
The Tiers
Etat (as they were then called) disowned any knowledge of artificial orders and
artificial privileges; and they were not only resolute on this point, but
somewhat disdainful. They began to consider the Aristocracy as a kind of fungus
growing out of the corruption of society, that could not be admitted even as a
branch of it; and from the disposition the Aristocracy had shown by upholding
Lettres de Cachet, and in sundry other instances, it was manifest that no
constitution could be formed by admitting men in any other character than as
National Men.
After
various altercations on this head, the Tiers Etat or Commons (as they were then
called) declared themselves (on a motion made for that purpose by the Abbe
Sieyes) "THE REPRESENTATIVE OF THE NATION; and that the two Orders could
be considered but as deputies of corporations, and could only have a deliberate
voice when they assembled in a national character with the national
representatives." This proceeding extinguished the style of Etats
Generaux, or States-General, and erected it into the style it now bears, that
of L'Assemblee Nationale, or National Assembly.
This motion
was not made in a precipitate manner. It was the result of cool deliberation,
and concerned between the national representatives and the patriotic members of
the two chambers, who saw into the folly, mischief, and injustice of artificial
privileged distinctions. It was become evident, that no constitution, worthy of
being called by that name, could be established on anything less than a
national ground. The Aristocracy had hitherto opposed the despotism of the
Court, and affected the language of patriotism; but it opposed it as its rival
(as the English Barons opposed King John) and it now opposed the nation from
the same motives.
On carrying
this motion, the national representatives, as had been concerted, sent an
invitation to the two chambers, to unite with them in a national character, and
proceed to business. A majority of the clergy, chiefly of the parish priests,
withdrew from the clerical chamber, and joined the nation; and forty-five from
the other chamber joined in like manner. There is a sort of secret history
belonging to this last circumstance, which is necessary to its explanation; it
was not judged prudent that all the patriotic members of the chamber styling
itself the Nobles, should quit it at once; and in consequence of this
arrangement, they drew off by degrees, always leaving some, as well to reason
the case, as to watch the suspected. In a little time the numbers increased
from forty-five to eighty, and soon after to a greater number; which, with the
majority of the clergy, and the whole of the national representatives, put the
malcontents in a very diminutive condition.
The King,
who, very different from the general class called by that name, is a man of a
good heart, showed himself disposed to recommend a union of the three chambers,
on the ground the National Assembly had taken; but the malcontents exerted
themselves to prevent it, and began now to have another project in view. Their
numbers consisted of a majority of the aristocratical chamber, and the minority
of the clerical chamber, chiefly of bishops and high-beneficed clergy; and
these men were determined to put everything to issue, as well by strength as by
stratagem. They had no objection to a constitution; but it must be such a one
as themselves should dictate, and suited to their own views and particular
situations. On the other hand, the Nation disowned knowing anything of them but
as citizens, and was determined to shut out all such up-start pretensions. The
more aristocracy appeared, the more it was despised; there was a visible
imbecility and want of intellects in the majority, a sort of je ne sais quoi,
that while it affected to be more than citizen, was less than man. It lost
ground from contempt more than from hatred; and was rather jeered at as an ass,
than dreaded as a lion. This is the general character of aristocracy, or what
are called Nobles or Nobility, or rather No-ability, in all countries.
The plan of
the malcontents consisted now of two things; either to deliberate and vote by
chambers (or orders), more especially on all questions respecting a
Constitution (by which the aristocratical chamber would have had a negative on
any article of the Constitution); or, in case they could not accomplish this
object, to overthrow the National Assembly entirely.
To effect
one or other of these objects they began to cultivate a friendship with the
despotism they had hitherto attempted to rival, and the Count D'Artois became
their chief. The king (who has since declared himself deceived into their measures)
held, according to the old form, a Bed of Justice, in which he accorded to the
deliberation and vote par tete (by head) upon several subjects; but reserved
the deliberation and vote upon all questions respecting a constitution to the
three chambers separately. This declaration of the king was made against the
advice of M. Neckar, who now began to perceive that he was growing out of
fashion at Court, and that another minister was in contemplation.
As the form
of sitting in separate chambers was yet apparently kept up, though essentially
destroyed, the national representatives immediately after this declaration of
the King resorted to their own chambers to consult on a protest against it; and
the minority of the chamber (calling itself the Nobles), who had joined the
national cause, retired to a private house to consult in like manner. The
malcontents had by this time concerted their measures with the court, which the
Count D'Artois undertook to conduct; and as they saw from the discontent which
the declaration excited, and the opposition making against it, that they could
not obtain a control over the intended constitution by a separate vote, they
prepared themselves for their final object- that of conspiring against the
National Assembly, and overthrowing it.
The next
morning the door of the chamber of the National Assembly was shut against them,
and guarded by troops; and the members were refused admittance. On this they
withdrew to a tennis-ground in the neighbourhood of Versailles, as the most
convenient place they could find, and, after renewing their session, took an
oath never to separate from each other, under any circumstance whatever, death
excepted, until they had established a constitution. As the experiment of
shutting up the house had no other effect than that of producing a closer
connection in the members, it was opened again the next day, and the public
business recommenced in the usual place.
We are now
to have in view the forming of the new ministry, which was to accomplish the
overthrow of the National Assembly. But as force would be necessary, orders
were issued to assemble thirty thousand troops, the command of which was given
to Broglio, one of the intended new ministry, who was recalled from the country
for this purpose. But as some management was necessary to keep this plan
concealed till the moment it should be ready for execution, it is to this
policy that a declaration made by Count D'Artois must be attributed, and which
is here proper to be introduced.
It could
not but occur while the malcontents continued to resort to their chambers
separate from the National Assembly, more jealousy would be excited than if
they were mixed with it, and that the plot might be suspected. But as they had
taken their ground, and now wanted a pretence for quitting it, it was necessary
that one should be devised. This was effectually accomplished by a declaration
made by the Count D'Artois: "That if they took not a Part in the National
Assembly, the life of the king would be endangered": on which they quitted
their chambers, and mixed with the Assembly, in one body.
At the time
this declaration was made, it was generally treated as a piece of absurdity in
Count D'Artois calculated merely to relieve the outstanding members of the two
chambers from the diminutive situation they were put in; and if nothing more
had followed, this conclusion would have been good. But as things best explain
themselves by their events, this apparent union was only a cover to the
machinations which were secretly going on; and the declaration accommodated
itself to answer that purpose. In a little time the National Assembly found
itself surrounded by troops, and thousands more were daily arriving. On this a
very strong declaration was made by the National Assembly to the King,
remonstrating on the impropriety of the measure, and demanding the reason. The
King, who was not in the secret of this business, as himself afterwards
declared, gave substantially for answer, that he had no other object in view
than to preserve the public tranquility, which appeared to be much disturbed.
But in a
few days from this time the plot unravelled itself M. Neckar and the ministry
were displaced, and a new one formed of the enemies of the Revolution; and
Broglio, with between twenty-five and thirty thousand foreign troops, was
arrived to support them. The mask was now thrown off, and matters were come to
a crisis. The event was that in a space of three days the new ministry and
their abettors found it prudent to fly the nation; the Bastille was taken, and
Broglio and his foreign troops dispersed, as is already related in the former
part of this work.
There are
some curious circumstances in the history of this short-lived ministry, and
this short-lived attempt at a counter-revolution. The Palace of Versailles,
where the Court was sitting, was not more than four hundred yards distant from
the hall where the National Assembly was sitting. The two places were at this
moment like the separate headquarters of two combatant armies; yet the Court
was as perfectly ignorant of the information which had arrived from Paris to
the National Assembly, as if it had resided at an hundred miles distance. The
then Marquis de la Fayette, who (as has been already mentioned) was chosen to
preside in the National Assembly on this particular occasion, named by order of
the Assembly three successive deputations to the king, on the day and up to the
evening on which the Bastille was taken, to inform and confer with him on the
state of affairs; but the ministry, who knew not so much as that it was
attacked, precluded all communication, and were solacing themselves how
dextrously they had succeeded; but in a few hours the accounts arrived so thick
and fast that they had to start from their desks and run. Some set off in one disguise,
and some in another, and none in their own character. Their anxiety now was to
outride the news, lest they should be stopt, which, though it flew fast, flew
not so fast as themselves.
It is worth
remarking that the National Assembly neither pursued those fugitive
conspirators, nor took any notice of them, nor sought to retaliate in any shape
whatever. Occupied with establishing a constitution founded on the Rights of
Man and the Authority of the People, the only authority on which Government has
a right to exist in any country, the National Assembly felt none of those mean
passions which mark the character of impertinent governments, founding
themselves on their own authority, or on the absurdity of hereditary
succession. It is the faculty of the human mind to become what it contemplates,
and to act in unison with its object.
The
conspiracy being thus dispersed, one of the first works of the National
Assembly, instead of vindictive proclamations, as has been the case with other
governments, was to publish a declaration of the Rights of Man, as the basis on
which the new constitution was to be built, and which is here subjoined:
DECLARATION
OF THE RIGHTS OF MAN AND OF CITIZENS BY THE NATIONAL ASSEMBLY OF FRANCE
The
representatives of the people of FRANCE, formed into a NATIONAL ASSEMBLY,
considering that ignorance, neglect, or contempt of human rights, are the sole
causes of public misfortunes and corruptions of Government, have resolved to
set forth in a solemn declaration, these natural, imprescriptible, and
inalienable rights: that this declaration being constantly present to the minds
of the members of the body social, they may be forever kept attentive to their
rights and their duties; that the acts of the legislative and executive powers
of Government, being capable of being every moment compared with the end of
political institutions, may be more respected; and also, that the future claims
of the citizens, being directed by simple and incontestable principles, may
always tend to the maintenance of the Constitution, and the general happiness.
For these
reasons the NATIONAL ASSEMBLY doth recognize and declare, in the presence of
the Supreme Being, and with the hope of his blessing and favour, the following
sacred rights of men and of citizens:
ONE: MEN
ARE BORN, AND ALWAYS CONTINUE, FREE AND EQUAL IN RESPECT OF THEIR RIGHTS. CIVIL
DISTINCTIONS, THEREFORE, CAN BE FOUNDED ONLY ON PUBLIC UTILITY.
TWO: THE
END OF ALL POLITICAL ASSOCIATIONS IS THE PRESERVATION OF THE NATURAL AND
IMPRESCRIPTIBLE RIGHTS OF MAN; AND THESE RIGHTS ARE LIBERTY, PROPERTY,
SECURITY, AND RESISTANCE OF OPPRESSION.
THREE: THE
NATION IS ESSENTIALLY THE SOURCE OF ALL SOVEREIGNTY; NOR CAN ANY INDIVIDUAL, OR
ANY BODY OF MEN, BE ENTITLED TO ANY AUTHORITY WHICH IS NOT EXPRESSLY DERIVED
FROM IT.
FOUR:
POLITICAL LIBERTY CONSISTS IN THE POWER OF DOING WHATEVER DOES NOT INJURE
ANOTHER. THE EXERCISE OF THE NATURAL RIGHTS OF EVERY MAN, HAS NO OTHER LIMITS
THAN THOSE WHICH ARE NECESSARY TO SECURE TO EVERY OTHER MAN THE FREE EXERCISE
OF THE SAME RIGHTS; AND THESE LIMITS ARE DETERMINABLE ONLY BY THE LAW
FIVE: THE
LAW OUGHT TO PROHIBIT ONLY ACTIONS HURTFUL TO SOCIETY. WHAT IS NOT PROHIBITED
BY THE LAW SHOULD NOT BE HINDERED; NOR SHOULD ANYONE BE COMPELLED TO THAT WHICH
THE LAW DOES NOT REQUIRE
SIX: THE
LAW IS AN EXPRESSION OF THE WILL OF THE COMMUNITY. ALL CITIZENS HAVE A RIGHT TO
CONCUR, EITHER PERSONALLY OR BY THEIR REPRESENTATIVES, IN ITS FORMATION. IT
SHOULD BE THE SAME TO ALL, WHETHER IT PROTECTS OR PUNISHES; AND ALL BEING EQUAL
IN ITS SIGHT, ARE EQUALLY ELIGIBLE TO ALL HONOURS, PLACES, AND EMPLOYMENTS,
ACCORDING TO THEIR DIFFERENT ABILITIES, WITHOUT ANY OTHER DISTINCTION THAN THAT
CREATED BY THEIR VIRTUES AND TALENTS
SEVEN: NO
MAN SHOULD BE ACCUSED, ARRESTED, OR HELD IN CONFINEMENT, EXCEPT IN CASES
DETERMINED BY THE LAW, AND ACCORDING TO THE FORMS WHICH IT HAS PRESCRIBED. ALL
WHO PROMOTE, SOLICIT, EXECUTE, OR CAUSE TO BE EXECUTED, ARBITRARY ORDERS, OUGHT
TO BE PUNISHED, AND EVERY CITIZEN CALLED UPON, OR APPREHENDED BY VIRTUE OF THE LAW,
OUGHT IMMEDIATELY TO OBEY, AND RENDERS HIMSELF CULPABLE BY RESISTANCE.
EIGHT: THE
LAW OUGHT TO IMPOSE NO OTHER PENALTIES BUT SUCH AS ARE ABSOLUTELY AND EVIDENTLY
NECESSARY; AND NO ONE OUGHT TO BE PUNISHED, BUT IN VIRTUE OF A LAW PROMULGATED
BEFORE THE OFFENCE, AND LEGALLY APPLIED.
NINE: EVERY
MAN BEING PRESUMED INNOCENT TILL HE HAS BEEN CONVICTED, WHENEVER HIS DETENTION
BECOMES INDISPENSABLE, ALL RIGOUR TO HIM, MORE THAN IS NECESSARY TO SECURE HIS
PERSON, OUGHT TO BE PROVIDED AGAINST BY THE LAW.
TEN: NO MAN
OUGHT TO BE MOLESTED ON ACCOUNT OF HIS OPINIONS, NOT EVEN ON ACCOUNT OF HIS
RELIGIOUS OPINIONS, PROVIDED HIS AVOWAL OF THEM DOES NOT DISTURB THE PUBLIC
ORDER ESTABLISHED BY THE LAW.
ELEVEN: THE
UNRESTRAINED COMMUNICATION OF THOUGHTS AND OPINIONS BEING ONE OF THE MOST
PRECIOUS RIGHTS OF MAN, EVERY CITIZEN MAY SPEAK, WRITE, AND PUBLISH FREELY,
PROVIDED HE IS RESPONSIBLE FOR THE ABUSE OF THIS LIBERTY, IN CASES DETERMINED
BY THE LAW.
TWELVE: A
PUBLIC FORCE BEING NECESSARY TO GIVE SECURITY TO THE RIGHTS OF MEN AND OF
CITIZENS, THAT FORCE IS INSTITUTED FOR THE BENEFIT OF THE COMMUNITY AND NOT FOR
THE PARTICULAR BENEFIT OF THE PERSONS TO WHOM IT IS INTRUSTED.
THIRTEEN: A
COMMON CONTRIBUTION BEING NECESSARY FOR THE SUPPORT OF THE PUBLIC FORCE, AND FOR
DEFRAYING THE OTHER EXPENSES OF GOVERNMENT, IT OUGHT TO BE DIVIDED EQUALLY
AMONG THE MEMBERS OF THE COMMUNITY, ACCORDING TO THEIR ABILITIES.
FOURTEEN:
EVERY CITIZEN HAS A RIGHT, EITHER BY HIMSELF OR HIS REPRESENTATIVE, TO A FREE
VOICE IN DETERMINING THE NECESSITY OF PUBLIC CONTRIBUTIONS, THE APPROPRIATION
OF THEM, AND THEIR AMOUNT, MODE OF ASSESSMENT, AND DURATION.
FIFTEEN:
EVERY COMMUNITY HAS A RIGHT TO DEMAND OF ALL ITS AGENTS AN ACCOUNT OF THEIR
CONDUCT.
SIXTEEN:
EVERY COMMUNITY IN WHICH A SEPARATION OF POWERS AND A SECURITY OF RIGHTS IS NOT
PROVIDED FOR, WANTS A CONSTITUTION.
SEVENTEEN:
THE RIGHT TO PROPERTY BEING INVIOLABLE AND SACRED, NO ONE OUGHT TO BE DEPRIVED
OF IT, EXCEPT IN CASES OF EVIDENT PUBLIC NECESSITY, LEGALLY ASCERTAINED, AND ON
CONDITION OF A PREVIOUS JUST INDEMNITY. PT 1 OBSERVATIONS
Observations
on the Declaration of Rights
The first
three articles comprehend in general terms the whole of a Declaration of
Rights, all the succeeding articles either originate from them or follow as
elucidations. The 4th, 5th, and 6th define more particularly what is only
generally expressed in the 1st, 2nd, and 3rd.
The 7th,
8th, 9th, 10th, and 11th articles are declaratory of principles upon which laws
shall be constructed, conformable to rights already declared. But it is
questioned by some very good people in France, as well as in other countries,
whether the 10th article sufficiently guarantees the right it is intended to
accord with; besides which it takes off from the divine dignity of religion,
and weakens its operative force upon the mind, to make it a subject of human
laws. It then presents itself to man like light intercepted by a cloudy medium,
in which the source of it is obscured from his sight, and he sees nothing to
reverence in the dusky ray.*[10]
The
remaining articles, beginning with the twelfth, are substantially contained in
the principles of the preceding articles; but in the particular situation in
which France then was, having to undo what was wrong, as well as to set up what
was right, it was proper to be more particular than what in another condition
of things would be necessary.
While the
Declaration of Rights was before the National Assembly some of its members
remarked that if a declaration of rights were published it should be
accompanied by a Declaration of Duties. The observation discovered a mind that
reflected, and it only erred by not reflecting far enough. A Declaration of
Rights is, by reciprocity, a Declaration of Duties also. Whatever is my right
as a man is also the right of another; and it becomes my duty to guarantee as
well as to possess.
The three
first articles are the base of Liberty, as well individual as national; nor can
any country be called free whose government does not take its beginning from the
principles they contain, and continue to preserve them pure; and the whole of
the Declaration of Rights is of more value to the world, and will do more good,
than all the laws and statutes that have yet been promulgated.
In the
declaratory exordium which prefaces the Declaration of Rights we see the solemn
and majestic spectacle of a nation opening its commission, under the auspices
of its Creator, to establish a Government, a scene so new, and so
transcendantly unequalled by anything in the European world, that the name of a
Revolution is diminutive of its character, and it rises into a Regeneration of
man. What are the present Governments of Europe but a scene of iniquity and
oppression? What is that of England? Do not its own inhabitants say it is a market
where every man has his price, and where corruption is common traffic at the
expense of a deluded people? No wonder, then, that the French Revolution is
traduced. Had it confined itself merely to the destruction of flagrant
despotism perhaps Mr. Burke and some others had been silent. Their cry now is,
"It has gone too far"- that is, it has gone too far for them. It
stares corruption in the face, and the venal tribe are all alarmed. Their fear
discovers itself in their outrage, and they are but publishing the groans of a
wounded vice. But from such opposition the French Revolution, instead of
suffering, receives an homage. The more it is struck the more sparks it will
emit; and the fear is it will not be struck enough. It has nothing to dread
from attacks; truth has given it an establishment, and time will record it with
a name as lasting as his own.
Having now
traced the progress of the French Revolution through most of its principal
stages, from its commencement to the taking of the Bastille, and its establishment
by the Declaration of Rights, I will close the subject with the energetic
apostrophe of M. de la Fayette-
"May
this great monument, raised to Liberty, serve as a lesson to the oppressor, and
an example to the oppressed!"*[11]
Miscellaneous
Chapter
To prevent
interrupting the argument in the preceding part of this work, or the narrative
that follows it, I reserved some observations to be thrown together in a
Miscellaneous Chapter; by which variety might not be censured for confusion.
Mr. Burke's book is all Miscellany. His intention was to make an attack on the
French Revolution; but instead of proceeding with an orderly arrangement, he
has stormed it with a mob of ideas tumbling over and destroying one another.
But this
confusion and contradiction in Mr. Burke's Book is easily accounted for.- When
a man in a wrong cause attempts to steer his course by anything else than some
polar truth or principle, he is sure to be lost. It is beyond the compass of
his capacity to keep all the parts of an argument together, and make them unite
in one issue, by any other means than having this guide always in view. Neither
memory nor invention will supply the want of it. The former fails him, and the
latter betrays him.
Notwithstanding
the nonsense, for it deserves no better name, that Mr. Burke has asserted about
hereditary rights, and hereditary succession, and that a Nation has not a right
to form a Government of itself; it happened to fall in his way to give some
account of what Government is. "Government," says he, "is a
contrivance of human wisdom.
Admitting
that government is a contrivance of human wisdom, it must necessarily follow,
that hereditary succession, and hereditary rights (as they are called), can
make no part of it, because it is impossible to make wisdom hereditary; and on
the other hand, that cannot be a wise contrivance, which in its operation may
commit the government of a nation to the wisdom of an idiot. The ground which
Mr. Burke now takes is fatal to every part of his cause. The argument changes
from hereditary rights to hereditary wisdom; and the question is, Who is the
wisest man? He must now show that every one in the line of hereditary
succession was a Solomon, or his title is not good to be a king. What a stroke
has Mr. Burke now made! To use a sailor's phrase, he has swabbed the deck, and
scarcely left a name legible in the list of Kings; and he has mowed down and
thinned the House of Peers, with a scythe as formidable as Death and Time.
But Mr.
Burke appears to have been aware of this retort; and he has taken care to guard
against it, by making government to be not only a contrivance of human wisdom,
but a monopoly of wisdom. He puts the nation as fools on one side, and places
his government of wisdom, all wise men of Gotham, on the other side; and he
then proclaims, and says that "Men have a RIGHT that their WANTS should be
provided for by this wisdom." Having thus made proclamation, he next
proceeds to explain to them what their wants are, and also what their rights
are. In this he has succeeded dextrously, for he makes their wants to be a want
of wisdom; but as this is cold comfort, he then informs them, that they have a
right (not to any of the wisdom) but to be governed by it; and in order to
impress them with a solemn reverence for this monopoly-government of wisdom,
and of its vast capacity for all purposes, possible or impossible, right or
wrong, he proceeds with astrological mysterious importance, to tell to them its
powers in these words: "The rights of men in government are their
advantages; and these are often in balance between differences of good; and in
compromises sometimes between good and evil, and sometimes between evil and
evil. Political reason is a computing principle; adding- subtracting-
multiplying- and dividing, morally and not metaphysically or mathematically,
true moral denominations."
As the
wondering audience, whom Mr. Burke supposes himself talking to, may not
understand all this learned jargon, I will undertake to be its interpreter. The
meaning, then, good people, of all this, is: That government is governed by no
principle whatever; that it can make evil good, or good evil, just as it
pleases. In short, that government is arbitrary power.
But there
are some things which Mr. Burke has forgotten. First, he has not shown where
the wisdom originally came from: and secondly, he has not shown by what
authority it first began to act. In the manner he introduces the matter, it is
either government stealing wisdom, or wisdom stealing government. It is without
an origin, and its powers without authority. In short, it is usurpation.
Whether it
be from a sense of shame, or from a consciousness of some radical defect in a
government necessary to be kept out of sight, or from both, or from any other
cause, I undertake not to determine, but so it is, that a monarchical reasoner
never traces government to its source, or from its source. It is one of the
shibboleths by which he may be known. A thousand years hence, those who shall
live in America or France, will look back with contemplative pride on the
origin of their government, and say, This was the work of our glorious
ancestors! But what can a monarchical talker say? What has he to exult in? Alas
he has nothing. A certain something forbids him to look back to a beginning,
lest some robber, or some Robin Hood, should rise from the long obscurity of
time and say, I am the origin. Hard as Mr. Burke laboured at the Regency Bill
and Hereditary Succession two years ago, and much as he dived for precedents,
he still had not boldness enough to bring up William of Normandy, and say,
There is the head of the list! there is the fountain of honour! the son of a
prostitute, and the plunderer of the English nation.
The
opinions of men with respect to government are changing fast in all countries.
The Revolutions of America and France have thrown a beam of light over the
world, which reaches into man. The enormous expense of governments has provoked
people to think, by making them feel; and when once the veil begins to rend, it
admits not of repair. Ignorance is of a peculiar nature: once dispelled, it is
impossible to re-establish it. It is not originally a thing of itself, but is
only the absence of knowledge; and though man may be kept ignorant, he cannot
be made ignorant. The mind, in discovering truth, acts in the same manner as it
acts through the eye in discovering objects; when once any object has been
seen, it is impossible to put the mind back to the same condition it was in
before it saw it. Those who talk of a counter-revolution in France, show how
little they understand of man. There does not exist in the compass of language
an arrangement of words to express so much as the means of effecting a
counter-revolution. The means must be an obliteration of knowledge; and it has
never yet been discovered how to make man unknow his knowledge, or unthink his
thoughts.
Mr. Burke
is labouring in vain to stop the progress of knowledge; and it comes with the
worse grace from him, as there is a certain transaction known in the city which
renders him suspected of being a pensioner in a fictitious name. This may
account for some strange doctrine he has advanced in his book, which though he
points it at the Revolution Society, is effectually directed against the whole
nation.
"The
King of England," says he, "holds his crown (for it does not belong
to the Nation, according to Mr. Burke) in contempt of the choice of the
Revolution Society, who have not a single vote for a king among them either
individually or collectively; and his Majesty's heirs each in their time and
order, will come to the Crown with the same contempt of their choice, with
which his Majesty has succeeded to that which he now wears."
As to who
is King in England, or elsewhere, or whether there is any King at all, or whether
the people choose a Cherokee chief, or a Hessian hussar for a King, it is not a
matter that I trouble myself about- be that to themselves; but with respect to
the doctrine, so far as it relates to the Rights of Men and Nations, it is as
abominable as anything ever uttered in the most enslaved country under heaven.
Whether it sounds worse to my ear, by not being accustomed to hear such
despotism, than what it does to another person, I am not so well a judge of;
but of its abominable principle I am at no loss to judge.
It is not
the Revolution Society that Mr. Burke means; it is the Nation, as well in its
original as in its representative character; and he has taken care to make
himself understood, by saying that they have not a vote either collectively or
individually. The Revolution Society is composed of citizens of all
denominations, and of members of both the Houses of Parliament; and
consequently, if there is not a right to a vote in any of the characters, there
can be no right to any either in the nation or in its Parliament. This ought to
be a caution to every country how to import foreign families to be kings. It is
somewhat curious to observe, that although the people of England had been in
the habit of talking about kings, it is always a Foreign House of Kings; hating
Foreigners yet governed by them.- It is now the House of Brunswick, one of the
petty tribes of Germany.
It has
hitherto been the practice of the English Parliaments to regulate what was
called the succession (taking it for granted that the Nation then continued to
accord to the form of annexing a monarchical branch of its government; for
without this the Parliament could not have had authority to have sent either to
Holland or to Hanover, or to impose a king upon the nation against its will).
And this must be the utmost limit to which Parliament can go upon this case;
but the right of the Nation goes to the whole case, because it has the right of
changing its whole form of government. The right of a Parliament is only a
right in trust, a right by delegation, and that but from a very small part of
the Nation; and one of its Houses has not even this. But the right of the
Nation is an original right, as universal as taxation. The nation is the
paymaster of everything, and everything must conform to its general will.
I remember
taking notice of a speech in what is called the English House of Peers, by the
then Earl of Shelburne, and I think it was at the time he was Minister, which
is applicable to this case. I do not directly charge my memory with every
particular; but the words and the purport, as nearly as I remember, were these:
"That the form of a Government was a matter wholly at the will of the
Nation at all times, that if it chose a monarchical form, it had a right to have
it so; and if it afterwards chose to be a Republic, it had a right to be a
Republic, and to say to a King, "We have no longer any occasion for
you."
When Mr.
Burke says that "His Majesty's heirs and successors, each in their time
and order, will come to the crown with the same content of their choice with
which His Majesty had succeeded to that he wears," it is saying too much
even to the humblest individual in the country; part of whose daily labour goes
towards making up the million sterling a-year, which the country gives the
person it styles a king. Government with insolence is despotism; but when
contempt is added it becomes worse; and to pay for contempt is the excess of
slavery. This species of government comes from Germany; and reminds me of what
one of the Brunswick soldiers told me, who was taken prisoner by, the Americans
in the late war: "Ah!" said he, "America is a fine free country,
it is worth the people's fighting for; I know the difference by knowing my own:
in my country, if the prince says eat straw, we eat straw." God help that
country, thought I, be it England or elsewhere, whose liberties are to be
protected by German principles of government, and Princes of Brunswick!
As Mr.
Burke sometimes speaks of England, sometimes of France, and sometimes of the
world, and of government in general, it is difficult to answer his book without
apparently meeting him on the same ground. Although principles of Government
are general subjects, it is next to impossible, in many cases, to separate them
from the idea of place and circumstance, and the more so when circumstances are
put for arguments, which is frequently the case with Mr. Burke.
In the
former part of his book, addressing himself to the people of France, he says:
"No experience has taught us (meaning the English), that in any other
course or method than that of a hereditary crown, can our liberties be
regularly perpetuated and preserved sacred as our hereditary right." I ask
Mr. Burke, who is to take them away? M. de la Fayette, in speaking to France,
says: "For a Nation to be free, it is sufficient that she wills it."
But Mr. Burke represents England as wanting capacity to take care of itself,
and that its liberties must be taken care of by a King holding it in
"contempt." If England is sunk to this, it is preparing itself to eat
straw, as in Hanover, or in Brunswick. But besides the folly of the
declaration, it happens that the facts are all against Mr. Burke. It was by the
government being hereditary, that the liberties of the people were endangered.
Charles I. and James II. are instances of this truth; yet neither of them went
so far as to hold the Nation in contempt.
As it is
sometimes of advantage to the people of one country to hear what those of other
countries have to say respecting it, it is possible that the people of France
may learn something from Mr. Burke's book, and that the people of England may
also learn something from the answers it will occasion. When Nations fall out
about freedom, a wide field of debate is opened. The argument commences with
the rights of war, without its evils, and as knowledge is the object contended
for, the party that sustains the defeat obtains the prize.
Mr. Burke
talks about what he calls an hereditary crown, as if it were some production of
Nature; or as if, like Time, it had a power to operate, not only independently,
but in spite of man; or as if it were a thing or a subject universally
consented to. Alas! it has none of those properties, but is the reverse of them
all. It is a thing in imagination, the propriety of which is more than doubted,
and the legality of which in a few years will be denied.
But, to
arrange this matter in a clearer view than what general expression can heads
under which (what is called) an hereditary crown, or more properly speaking, an
hereditary succession to the Government of a Nation, can be considered; which
are-
First, The
right of a particular Family to establish itself.
Secondly,
The right of a Nation to establish a particular Family.
With
respect to the first of these heads, that of a Family establishing itself with
hereditary powers on its own authority, and independent of the consent of a
Nation, all men will concur in calling it despotism; and it would be
trespassing on their understanding to attempt to prove it.
But the
second head, that of a Nation establishing a particular Family with hereditary
powers, does not present itself as despotism on the first reflection; but if
men will permit it a second reflection to take place, and carry that reflection
forward but one remove out of their own persons to that of their offspring,
they will then see that hereditary succession becomes in its consequences the
same despotism to others, which they reprobated for themselves. It operates to
preclude the consent of the succeeding generations; and the preclusion of
consent is despotism. When the person who at any time shall be in possession of
a Government, or those who stand in succession to him, shall say to a Nation, I
hold this power in "contempt" of you, it signifies not on what
authority he pretends to say it. It is no relief, but an aggravation to a
person in slavery, to reflect that he was sold by his parent; and as that which
heightens the criminality of an act cannot be produced to prove the legality of
it, hereditary succession cannot be established as a legal thing.
In order to
arrive at a more perfect decision on this head, it will be proper to consider
the generation which undertakes to establish a Family with hereditary powers,
apart and separate from the generations which are to follow; and also to
consider the character in which the first generation acts with respect to
succeeding generations.
The
generation which first selects a person, and puts him at the head of its
Government, either with the title of King, or any other distinction, acts on
its own choice, be it wise or foolish, as a free agent for itself The person so
set up is not hereditary, but selected and appointed; and the generation who
sets him up, does not live under a hereditary government, but under a
government of its own choice and establishment. Were the generation who sets
him up, and the person so set up, to live for ever, it never could become
hereditary succession; and of consequence hereditary succession can only follow
on the death of the first parties.
As,
therefore, hereditary succession is out of the question with respect to the
first generation, we have now to consider the character in which that
generation acts with respect to the commencing generation, and to all
succeeding ones.
It assumes
a character, to which it has neither right nor title. It changes itself from a
Legislator to a Testator, and effects to make its Will, which is to have
operation after the demise of the makers, to bequeath the Government; and it
not only attempts to bequeath, but to establish on the succeeding generation, a
new and different form of Government under which itself lived. Itself, as
already observed, lived not under a hereditary Government but under a
Government of its own choice and establishment; and it now attempts, by virtue
of a will and testament (and which it has not authority to make), to take from
the commencing generation, and all future ones, the rights and free agency by
which itself acted.
But,
exclusive of the right which any generation has to act collectively as a
testator, the objects to which it applies itself in this case, are not within
the compass of any law, or of any will or testament.
The rights
of men in society, are neither devisable or transferable, nor annihilable, but
are descendable only, and it is not in the power of any generation to intercept
finally, and cut off the descent. If the present generation, or any other, are
disposed to be slaves, it does not lessen the right of the succeeding
generation to be free. Wrongs cannot have a legal descent. When Mr. Burke
attempts to maintain that the English nation did at the Revolution of 1688,
most solemnly renounce and abdicate their rights for themselves, and for all
their posterity for ever, he speaks a language that merits not reply, and which
can only excite contempt for his prostitute principles, or pity for his
ignorance.
In whatever
light hereditary succession, as growing out of the will and testament of some
former generation, presents itself, it is an absurdity. A cannot make a will to
take from B the property of B, and give it to C; yet this is the manner in
which (what is called) hereditary succession by law operates. A certain former
generation made a will, to take away the rights of the commencing generation,
and all future ones, and convey those rights to a third person, who afterwards
comes forward, and tells them, in Mr. Burke's language, that they have no
rights, that their rights are already bequeathed to him and that he will govern
in contempt of them. From such principles, and such ignorance, good Lord
deliver the world!
But, after
all, what is this metaphor called a crown, or rather what is monarchy? Is it a
thing, or is it a name, or is it a fraud? Is it a "contrivance of human
wisdom," or of human craft to obtain money from a nation under specious
pretences? Is it a thing necessary to a nation? If it is, in what does that
necessity consist, what service does it perform, what is its business, and what
are its merits? Does the virtue consist in the metaphor, or in the man? Doth
the goldsmith that makes the crown, make the virtue also? Doth it operate like
Fortunatus's wishing-cap, or Harlequin's wooden sword? Doth it make a man a
conjurer? In fine, what is it? It appears to be something going much out of
fashion, falling into ridicule, and rejected in some countries, both as
unnecessary and expensive. In America it is considered as an absurdity; and in
France it has so far declined, that the goodness of the man, and the respect
for his personal character, are the only things that preserve the appearance of
its existence.
If
government be what Mr. Burke describes it, "a contrivance of human
wisdom" I might ask him, if wisdom was at such a low ebb in England, that
it was become necessary to import it from Holland and from Hanover? But I will
do the country the justice to say, that was not the case; and even if it was it
mistook the cargo. The wisdom of every country, when properly exerted, is
sufficient for all its purposes; and there could exist no more real occasion in
England to have sent for a Dutch Stadtholder, or a German Elector, than there
was in America to have done a similar thing. If a country does not understand
its own affairs, how is a foreigner to understand them, who knows neither its
laws, its manners, nor its language? If there existed a man so transcendently
wise above all others, that his wisdom was necessary to instruct a nation, some
reason might be offered for monarchy; but when we cast our eyes about a
country, and observe how every part understands its own affairs; and when we
look around the world, and see that of all men in it, the race of kings are the
most insignificant in capacity, our reason cannot fail to ask us- What are
those men kept for?
If there is
anything in monarchy which we people of America do not understand, I wish Mr.
Burke would be so kind as to inform us. I see in America, a government
extending over a country ten times as large as England, and conducted with
regularity, for a fortieth part of the expense which Government costs in
England. If I ask a man in America if he wants a King, he retorts, and asks me
if I take him for an idiot? How is it that this difference happens? are we more
or less wise than others? I see in America the generality of people living in a
style of plenty unknown in monarchical countries; and I see that the principle
of its government, which is that of the equal Rights of Man, is making a rapid
progress in the world.
If monarchy
is a useless thing, why is it kept up anywhere? and if a necessary thing, how
can it be dispensed with? That civil government is necessary, all civilized
nations will agree; but civil government is republican government. All that
part of the government of England which begins with the office of constable,
and proceeds through the department of magistrate, quarter-sessions, and
general assize, including trial by jury, is republican government. Nothing of
monarchy appears in any part of it, except in the name which William the
Conqueror imposed upon the English, that of obliging them to call him
"Their Sovereign Lord the King."
It is easy
to conceive that a band of interested men, such as Placemen, Pensioners, Lords
of the bed-chamber, Lords of the kitchen, Lords of the necessary-house, and the
Lord knows what besides, can find as many reasons for monarchy as their
salaries, paid at the expense of the country, amount to; but if I ask the
farmer, the manufacturer, the merchant, the tradesman, and down through all the
occupations of life to the common labourer, what service monarchy is to him? he
can give me no answer. If I ask him what monarchy is, he believes it is
something like a sinecure.
Notwithstanding
the taxes of England amount to almost seventeen millions a year, said to be for
the expenses of Government, it is still evident that the sense of the Nation is
left to govern itself, and does govern itself, by magistrates and juries,
almost at its own charge, on republican principles, exclusive of the expense of
taxes. The salaries of the judges are almost the only charge that is paid out
of the revenue. Considering that all the internal government is executed by the
people, the taxes of England ought to be the lightest of any nation in Europe;
instead of which, they are the contrary. As this cannot be accounted for on the
score of civil government, the subject necessarily extends itself to the
monarchical part.
When the
people of England sent for George the First (and it would puzzle a wiser man
than Mr. Burke to discover for what he could be wanted, or what service he
could render), they ought at least to have conditioned for the abandonment of
Hanover. Besides the endless German intrigues that must follow from a German
Elector being King of England, there is a natural impossibility of uniting in
the same person the principles of Freedom and the principles of Despotism, or
as it is usually called in England Arbitrary Power. A German Elector is in his
electorate a despot; how then could it be expected that he should be attached
to principles of liberty in one country, while his interest in another was to
be supported by despotism? The union cannot exist; and it might easily have
been foreseen that German Electors would make German Kings, or in Mr. Burke's
words, would assume government with "contempt." The English have been
in the habit of considering a King of England only in the character in which he
appears to them; whereas the same person, while the connection lasts, has a
home-seat in another country, the interest of which is different to their own,
and the principles of the governments in opposition to each other. To such a
person England will appear as a town-residence, and the Electorate as the
estate. The English may wish, as I believe they do, success to the principles
of liberty in France, or in Germany; but a German Elector trembles for the fate
of despotism in his electorate; and the Duchy of Mecklenburgh, where the
present Queen's family governs, is under the same wretched state of arbitrary
power, and the people in slavish vassalage.
There never
was a time when it became the English to watch continental intrigues more
circumspectly than at the present moment, and to distinguish the politics of
the Electorate from the politics of the Nation. The Revolution of France has
entirely changed the ground with respect to England and France, as nations; but
the German despots, with Prussia at their head, are combining against liberty;
and the fondness of Mr. Pitt for office, and the interest which all his family
connections have obtained, do not give sufficient security against this
intrigue.
As
everything which passes in the world becomes matter for history, I will now
quit this subject, and take a concise review of the state of parties and
politics in England, as Mr. Burke has done in France.
Whether the
present reign commenced with contempt, I leave to Mr. Burke: certain, however,
it is, that it had strongly that appearance. The animosity of the English
nation, it is very well remembered, ran high; and, had the true principles of
Liberty been as well understood then as they now promise to be, it is probable
the Nation would not have patiently submitted to so much. George the First and
Second were sensible of a rival in the remains of the Stuarts; and as they
could not but consider themselves as standing on their good behaviour, they had
prudence to keep their German principles of government to themselves; but as
the Stuart family wore away, the prudence became less necessary.
The contest
between rights, and what were called prerogatives, continued to heat the nation
till some time after the conclusion of the American War, when all at once it
fell a calm- Execration exchanged itself for applause, and Court popularity
sprung up like a mushroom in a night.
To account
for this sudden transition, it is proper to observe that there are two distinct
species of popularity; the one excited by merit, and the other by resentment.
As the Nation had formed itself into two parties, and each was extolling the
merits of its parliamentary champions for and against prerogative, nothing
could operate to give a more general shock than an immediate coalition of the
champions themselves. The partisans of each being thus suddenly left in the
lurch, and mutually heated with disgust at the measure, felt no other relief
than uniting in a common execration against both. A higher stimulus or
resentment being thus excited than what the contest on prerogatives occasioned,
the nation quitted all former objects of rights and wrongs, and sought only
that of gratification. The indignation at the Coalition so effectually
superseded the indignation against the Court as to extinguish it; and without
any change of principles on the part of the Court, the same people who had
reprobated its despotism united with it to revenge themselves on the Coalition
Parliament. The case was not, which they liked best, but which they hated most;
and the least hated passed for love. The dissolution of the Coalition
Parliament, as it afforded the means of gratifying the resentment of the
Nation, could not fail to be popular; and from hence arose the popularity of
the Court.
Transitions
of this kind exhibit a Nation under the government of temper, instead of a
fixed and steady principle; and having once committed itself, however rashly,
it feels itself urged along to justify by continuance its first proceeding.
Measures which at other times it would censure it now approves, and acts
persuasion upon itself to suffocate its judgment.
On the
return of a new Parliament, the new Minister, Mr. Pitt, found himself in a secure
majority; and the Nation gave him credit, not out of regard to himself, but
because it had resolved to do it out of resentment to another. He introduced
himself to public notice by a proposed Reform of Parliament, which in its
operation would have amounted to a public justification of corruption. The
Nation was to be at the expense of buying up the rotten boroughs, whereas it
ought to punish the persons who deal in the traffic.
Passing
over the two bubbles of the Dutch business and the million a-year to sink the
national debt, the matter which most presents itself, is the affair of the
Regency. Never, in the course of my observation, was delusion more successfully
acted, nor a nation more completely deceived. But, to make this appear, it will
be necessary to go over the circumstances.
Mr. Fox had
stated in the House of Commons, that the Prince of Wales, as heir in
succession, had a right in himself to assume the Government. This was opposed
by Mr. Pitt; and, so far as the opposition was confined to the doctrine, it was
just. But the principles which Mr. Pitt maintained on the contrary side were as
bad, or worse in their extent, than those of Mr. Fox; because they went to
establish an aristocracy over the nation, and over the small representation it
has in the House of Commons.
Whether the
English form of Government be good or bad, is not in this case the question;
but, taking it as it stands, without regard to its merits or demerits, Mr. Pitt
was farther from the point than Mr. Fox.
It is
supposed to consist of three parts:- while therefore the Nation is disposed to
continue this form, the parts have a national standing, independent of each
other, and are not the creatures of each other. Had Mr. Fox passed through
Parliament, and said that the person alluded to claimed on the, ground of the
Nation, Mr. Pitt must then have contended what he called the right of the
Parliament against the right of the Nation.
By the
appearance which the contest made, Mr. Fox took the hereditary ground, and Mr.
Pitt the Parliamentary ground; but the fact is, they both took hereditary
ground, and Mr. Pitt took the worst of the two.
What is
called the Parliament is made up of two Houses, one of which is more
hereditary, and more beyond the control of the Nation than what the Crown (as
it is called) is supposed to be. It is an hereditary aristocracy, assuming and
asserting indefeasible, irrevocable rights and authority, wholly independent of
the Nation. Where, then, was the merited popularity of exalting this hereditary
power over another hereditary power less independent of the Nation than what
itself assumed to be, and of absorbing the rights of the Nation into a House
over which it has neither election nor control?
The general
impulse of the Nation was right; but it acted without reflection. It approved
the opposition made to the right set up by Mr. Fox, without perceiving that Mr.
Pitt was supporting another indefeasible right more remote from the Nation, in
opposition to it.
With
respect to the House of Commons, it is elected but by a small part of the
Nation; but were the election as universal as taxation, which it ought to be,
it would still be only the organ of the Nation, and cannot possess inherent
rights.- When the National Assembly of France resolves a matter, the resolve is
made in right of the Nation; but Mr. Pitt, on all national questions, so far as
they refer to the House of Commons, absorbs the rights of the Nation into the
organ, and makes the organ into a Nation, and the Nation itself into a cypher.
In a few words,
the question on the Regency was a question of a million a-year, which is
appropriated to the executive department: and Mr. Pitt could not possess
himself of any management of this sum, without setting up the supremacy of
Parliament; and when this was accomplished, it was indifferent who should be
Regent, as he must be Regent at his own cost. Among the curiosities which this
contentious debate afforded, was that of making the Great Seal into a King, the
affixing of which to an act was to be royal authority. If, therefore, Royal
Authority is a Great Seal, it consequently is in itself nothing; and a good
Constitution would be of infinitely more value to the Nation than what the
three Nominal Powers, as they now stand, are worth.
The
continual use of the word Constitution in the English Parliament shows there is
none; and that the whole is merely a form of government without a Constitution,
and constituting itself with what powers it pleases. If there were a
Constitution, it certainly could be referred to; and the debate on any
constitutional point would terminate by producing the Constitution. One member
says this is Constitution, and another says that is Constitution- To-day it is
one thing; and to-morrow something else- while the maintaining of the debate
proves there is none. Constitution is now the cant word of Parliament, tuning
itself to the ear of the Nation. Formerly it was the universal supremacy of
Parliament- the omnipotence of Parliament: But since the progress of Liberty in
France, those phrases have a despotic harshness in their note; and the English
Parliament have catched the fashion from the National Assembly, but without the
substance, of speaking of Constitution.
As the
present generation of the people in England did not make the Government, they
are not accountable for any of its defects; but, that sooner or later, it must
come into their hands to undergo a constitutional reformation, is as certain as
that the same thing has happened in France. If France, with a revenue of nearly
twenty-four millions sterling, with an extent of rich and fertile country above
four times larger than England, with a population of twenty-four millions of
inhabitants to support taxation, with upwards of ninety millions sterling of
gold and silver circulating in the nation, and with a debt less than the
present debt of England- still found it necessary, from whatever cause, to come
to a settlement of its affairs, it solves the problem of funding for both
countries.
It is out
of the question to say how long what is called the English constitution has
lasted, and to argue from thence how long it is to last; the question is, how
long can the funding system last? It is a thing but of modern invention, and
has not yet continued beyond the life of a man; yet in that short space it has
so far accumulated, that, together with the current expenses, it requires an
amount of taxes at least equal to the whole landed rental of the nation in
acres to defray the annual expenditure. That a government could not have always
gone on by the same system which has been followed for the last seventy years,
must be evident to every man; and for the same reason it cannot always go on.
The funding
system is not money; neither is it, properly speaking, credit. It, in effect,
creates upon paper the sum which it appears to borrow, and lays on a tax to
keep the imaginary capital alive by the payment of interest and sends the
annuity to market, to be sold for paper already in circulation. If any credit
is given, it is to the disposition of the people to pay the tax, and not to the
government, which lays it on. When this disposition expires, what is supposed
to be the credit of Government expires with it. The instance of France under
the former Government shows that it is impossible to compel the payment of
taxes by force, when a whole nation is determined to take its stand upon that
ground.
Mr. Burke,
in his review of the finances of France, states the quantity of gold and silver
in France, at about eighty-eight millions sterling. In doing this, he has, I
presume, divided by the difference of exchange, instead of the standard of
twenty-four livres to a pound sterling; for M. Neckar's statement, from which
Mr. Burke's is taken, is two thousand two hundred millions of livres, which is
upwards of ninety-one millions and a half sterling.
M. Neckar
in France, and Mr. George Chalmers at the Office of Trade and Plantation in
England, of which Lord Hawkesbury is president, published nearly about the same
time (1786) an account of the quantity of money in each nation, from the
returns of the Mint of each nation. Mr. Chalmers, from the returns of the
English Mint at the Tower of London, states the quantity of money in England,
including Scotland and Ireland, to be twenty millions sterling.*[12]
M.
Neckar*[13] says that the amount of money in France, recoined from the old coin
which was called in, was two thousand five hundred millions of livres (upwards
of one hundred and four millions sterling); and, after deducting for waste, and
what may be in the West Indies and other possible circumstances, states the
circulation quantity at home to be ninety-one millions and a half sterling;
but, taking it as Mr. Burke has put it, it is sixty-eight millions more than
the national quantity in England.
That the
quantity of money in France cannot be under this sum, may at once be seen from
the state of the French Revenue, without referring to the records of the French
Mint for proofs. The revenue of France, prior to the Revolution, was nearly
twenty-four millions sterling; and as paper had then no existence in France the
whole revenue was collected upon gold and silver; and it would have been
impossible to have collected such a quantity of revenue upon a less national
quantity than M. Neckar has stated. Before the establishment of paper in
England, the revenue was about a fourth part of the national amount of gold and
silver, as may be known by referring to the revenue prior to King William, and
the quantity of money stated to be in the nation at that time, which was nearly
as much as it is now.
It can be
of no real service to a nation, to impose upon itself, or to permit itself to
be imposed upon; but the prejudices of some, and the imposition of others, have
always represented France as a nation possessing but little money- whereas the
quantity is not only more than four times what the quantity is in England, but
is considerably greater on a proportion of numbers. To account for this
deficiency on the part of England, some reference should be had to the English
system of funding. It operates to multiply paper, and to substitute it in the
room of money, in various shapes; and the more paper is multiplied, the more
opportunities are offered to export the specie; and it admits of a possibility
(by extending it to small notes) of increasing paper till there is no money
left.
I know this
is not a pleasant subject to English readers; but the matters I am going to
mention, are so important in themselves, as to require the attention of men
interested in money transactions of a public nature. There is a circumstance
stated by M. Neckar, in his treatise on the administration of the finances,
which has never been attended to in England, but which forms the only basis
whereon to estimate the quantity of money (gold and silver) which ought to be
in every nation in Europe, to preserve a relative proportion with other
nations.
Lisbon and
Cadiz are the two ports into which (money) gold and silver from South America
are imported, and which afterwards divide and spread themselves over Europe by
means of commerce, and increase the quantity of money in all parts of Europe.
If, therefore, the amount of the annual importation into Europe can be known,
and the relative proportion of the foreign commerce of the several nations by
which it can be distributed can be ascertained, they give a rule sufficiently
true, to ascertain the quantity of money which ought to be found in any nation,
at any given time.
M. Neckar
shows from the registers of Lisbon and Cadiz, that the importation of gold and
silver into Europe, is five millions sterling annually. He has not taken it on
a single year, but on an average of fifteen succeeding years, from 1763 to
1777, both inclusive; in which time, the amount was one thousand eight hundred
million livres, which is seventy-five millions sterling.*[14]
From the
commencement of the Hanover succession in 1714 to the time Mr. Chalmers
published, is seventy-two years; and the quantity imported into Europe, in that
time, would be three hundred and sixty millions sterling.
If the
foreign commerce of Great Britain be stated at a sixth part of what the whole
foreign commerce of Europe amounts to (which is probably an inferior estimation
to what the gentlemen at the Exchange would allow) the proportion which Britain
should draw by commerce of this sum, to keep herself on a proportion with the
rest of Europe, would be also a sixth part which is sixty millions sterling;
and if the same allowance for waste and accident be made for England which M.
Neckar makes for France, the quantity remaining after these deductions would be
fifty-two millions; and this sum ought to have been in the nation (at the time
Mr. Chalmers published), in addition to the sum which was in the nation at the
commencement of the Hanover succession, and to have made in the whole at least
sixty-six millions sterling; instead of which there were but twenty millions,
which is forty-six millions below its proportionate quantity.
As the
quantity of gold and silver imported into Lisbon and Cadiz is more exactly ascertained
than that of any commodity imported into England, and as the quantity of money
coined at the Tower of London is still more positively known, the leading facts
do not admit of controversy. Either, therefore, the commerce of England is
unproductive of profit, or the gold and silver which it brings in leak
continually away by unseen means at the average rate of about three-quarters of
a million a year, which, in the course of seventy-two years, accounts for the
deficiency; and its absence is supplied by paper.*[15]
The
Revolution of France is attended with many novel circumstances, not only in the
political sphere, but in the circle of money transactions. Among others, it
shows that a government may be in a state of insolvency and a nation rich. So
far as the fact is confined to the late Government of France, it was insolvent;
because the nation would no longer support its extravagance, and therefore it
could no longer support itself- but with respect to the nation all the means
existed. A government may be said to be insolvent every time it applies to the
nation to discharge its arrears. The insolvency of the late Government of
France and the present of England differed in no other respect than as the
dispositions of the people differ. The people of France refused their aid to
the old Government; and the people of England submit to taxation without
inquiry. What is called the Crown in England has been insolvent several times;
the last of which, publicly known, was in May, 1777, when it applied to the
nation to discharge upwards of L600,000 private debts, which otherwise it could
not pay.
It was the
error of Mr. Pitt, Mr. Burke, and all those who were unacquainted with the
affairs of France to confound the French nation with the French Government. The
French nation, in effect, endeavoured to render the late Government insolvent
for the purpose of taking government into its own hands: and it reserved its
means for the support of the new Government. In a country of such vast extent
and population as France the natural means cannot be wanting, and the political
means appear the instant the nation is disposed to permit them. When Mr. Burke,
in a speech last winter in the British Parliament, "cast his eyes over the
map of Europe, and saw a chasm that once was France," he talked like a
dreamer of dreams. The same natural France existed as before, and all the
natural means existed with it. The only chasm was that the extinction of
despotism had left, and which was to be filled up with the Constitution more
formidable in resources than the power which had expired.
Although
the French Nation rendered the late Government insolvent, it did not permit the
insolvency to act towards the creditors; and the creditors, considering the
Nation as the real pay-master, and the Government only as the agent, rested
themselves on the nation, in preference to the Government. This appears greatly
to disturb Mr. Burke, as the precedent is fatal to the policy by which
governments have supposed themselves secure. They have contracted debts, with a
view of attaching what is called the monied interest of a Nation to their
support; but the example in France shows that the permanent security of the
creditor is in the Nation, and not in the Government; and that in all possible
revolutions that may happen in Governments, the means are always with the
Nation, and the Nation always in existence. Mr. Burke argues that the creditors
ought to have abided the fate of the Government which they trusted; but the
National Assembly considered them as the creditors of the Nation, and not of
the Government- of the master, and not of the steward.
Notwithstanding
the late government could not discharge the current expenses, the present
government has paid off a great part of the capital. This has been accomplished
by two means; the one by lessening the expenses of government, and the other by
the sale of the monastic and ecclesiastical landed estates. The devotees and
penitent debauchees, extortioners and misers of former days, to ensure
themselves a better world than that they were about to leave, had bequeathed
immense property in trust to the priesthood for pious uses; and the priesthood
kept it for themselves. The National Assembly has ordered it to be sold for the
good of the whole nation, and the priesthood to be decently provided for.
In
consequence of the revolution, the annual interest of the debt of France will
be reduced at least six millions sterling, by paying off upwards of one hundred
millions of the capital; which, with lessening the former expenses of
government at least three millions, will place France in a situation worthy the
imitation of Europe.
Upon a
whole review of the subject, how vast is the contrast! While Mr. Burke has been
talking of a general bankruptcy in France, the National Assembly has been
paying off the capital of its debt; and while taxes have increased near a
million a year in England, they have lowered several millions a year in France.
Not a word has either Mr. Burke or Mr. Pitt said about the French affairs, or
the state of the French finances, in the present Session of Parliament. The
subject begins to be too well understood, and imposition serves no longer.
There is a
general enigma running through the whole of Mr. Burke's book. He writes in a
rage against the National Assembly; but what is he enraged about? If his
assertions were as true as they are groundless, and that France by her
Revolution, had annihilated her power, and become what he calls a chasm, it
might excite the grief of a Frenchman (considering himself as a national man),
and provoke his rage against the National Assembly; but why should it excite
the rage of Mr. Burke? Alas! it is not the nation of France that Mr. Burke
means, but the Court; and every Court in Europe, dreading the same fate, is in
mourning. He writes neither in the character of a Frenchman nor an Englishman,
but in the fawning character of that creature known in all countries, and a
friend to none- a courtier. Whether it be the Court of Versailles, or the Court
of St. James, or Carlton-House, or the Court in expectation, signifies not; for
the caterpillar principle of all Courts and Courtiers are alike. They form a
common policy throughout Europe, detached and separate from the interest of
Nations: and while they appear to quarrel, they agree to plunder. Nothing can
be more terrible to a Court or Courtier than the Revolution of France. That
which is a blessing to Nations is bitterness to them: and as their existence
depends on the duplicity of a country, they tremble at the approach of principles,
and dread the precedent that threatens their overthrow.
Conclusion
Reason and
Ignorance, the opposites of each other, influence the great bulk of mankind. If
either of these can be rendered sufficiently extensive in a country, the
machinery of Government goes easily on. Reason obeys itself; and Ignorance
submits to whatever is dictated to it.
The two
modes of the Government which prevail in the world, are-
First,
Government by election and representation.
Secondly,
Government by hereditary succession.
The former
is generally known by the name of republic; the latter by that of monarchy and
aristocracy.
Those two
distinct and opposite forms erect themselves on the two distinct and opposite
bases of Reason and Ignorance.- As the exercise of Government requires talents
and abilities, and as talents and abilities cannot have hereditary descent, it
is evident that hereditary succession requires a belief from man to which his
reason cannot subscribe, and which can only be established upon his ignorance;
and the more ignorant any country is, the better it is fitted for this species
of Government.
On the
contrary, Government, in a well-constituted republic, requires no belief from
man beyond what his reason can give. He sees the rationale of the whole system,
its origin and its operation; and as it is best supported when best understood,
the human faculties act with boldness, and acquire, under this form of
government, a gigantic manliness.
As,
therefore, each of those forms acts on a different base, the one moving freely
by the aid of reason, the other by ignorance; we have next to consider, what it
is that gives motion to that species of Government which is called mixed
Government, or, as it is sometimes ludicrously styled, a Government of this, that
and t' other.
The moving
power in this species of Government is, of necessity, Corruption. However
imperfect election and representation may be in mixed Governments, they still
give exercise to a greater portion of reason than is convenient to the hereditary
Part; and therefore it becomes necessary to buy the reason up. A mixed
Government is an imperfect everything, cementing and soldering the discordant
parts together by corruption, to act as a whole. Mr. Burke appears highly
disgusted that France, since she had resolved on a revolution, did not adopt
what he calls "A British Constitution"; and the regretful manner in
which he expresses himself on this occasion implies a suspicion that the
British Constitution needed something to keep its defects in countenance.
In mixed
Governments there is no responsibility: the parts cover each other till
responsibility is lost; and the corruption which moves the machine, contrives
at the same time its own escape. When it is laid down as a maxim, that a King
can do no wrong, it places him in a state of similar security with that of
idiots and persons insane, and responsibility is out of the question with
respect to himself. It then descends upon the Minister, who shelters himself
under a majority in Parliament, which, by places, pensions, and corruption, he
can always command; and that majority justifies itself by the same authority
with which it protects the Minister. In this rotatory motion, responsibility is
thrown off from the parts, and from the whole.
When there
is a Part in a Government which can do no wrong, it implies that it does
nothing; and is only the machine of another power, by whose advice and
direction it acts. What is supposed to be the King in the mixed Governments, is
the Cabinet; and as the Cabinet is always a part of the Parliament, and the
members justifying in one character what they advise and act in another, a
mixed Government becomes a continual enigma; entailing upon a country by the
quantity of corruption necessary to solder the parts, the expense of supporting
all the forms of government at once, and finally resolving itself into a
Government by Committee; in which the advisers, the actors, the approvers, the
justifiers, the persons responsible, and the persons not responsible, are the
same persons.
By this
pantomimical contrivance, and change of scene and character, the parts help
each other out in matters which neither of them singly would assume to act.
When money is to be obtained, the mass of variety apparently dissolves, and a
profusion of parliamentary praises passes between the parts. Each admires with
astonishment, the wisdom, the liberality, the disinterestedness of the other:
and all of them breathe a pitying sigh at the burthens of the Nation.
But in a
well-constituted republic, nothing of this soldering, praising, and pitying,
can take place; the representation being equal throughout the country, and
complete in itself, however it may be arranged into legislative and executive,
they have all one and the same natural source. The parts are not foreigners to
each other, like democracy, aristocracy, and monarchy. As there are no
discordant distinctions, there is nothing to corrupt by compromise, nor
confound by contrivance. Public measures appeal of themselves to the
understanding of the Nation, and, resting on their own merits, disown any
flattering applications to vanity. The continual whine of lamenting the burden
of taxes, however successfully it may be practised in mixed Governments, is
inconsistent with the sense and spirit of a republic. If taxes are necessary,
they are of course advantageous; but if they require an apology, the apology
itself implies an impeachment. Why, then, is man thus imposed upon, or why does
he impose upon himself?
When men
are spoken of as kings and subjects, or when Government is mentioned under the
distinct and combined heads of monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy, what is it
that reasoning man is to understand by the terms? If there really existed in
the world two or more distinct and separate elements of human power, we should
then see the several origins to which those terms would descriptively apply;
but as there is but one species of man, there can be but one element of human
power; and that element is man himself. Monarchy, aristocracy, and democracy,
are but creatures of imagination; and a thousand such may be contrived as well
as three.
From the
Revolutions of America and France, and the symptoms that have appeared in other
countries, it is evident that the opinion of the world is changing with respect
to systems of Government, and that revolutions are not within the compass of
political calculations. The progress of time and circumstances, which men
assign to the accomplishment of great changes, is too mechanical to measure the
force of the mind, and the rapidity of reflection, by which revolutions are
generated: All the old governments have received a shock from those that
already appear, and which were once more improbable, and are a greater subject
of wonder, than a general revolution in Europe would be now.
When we
survey the wretched condition of man, under the monarchical and hereditary
systems of Government, dragged from his home by one power, or driven by
another, and impoverished by taxes more than by enemies, it becomes evident
that those systems are bad, and that a general revolution in the principle and
construction of Governments is necessary.
What is
government more than the management of the affairs of a Nation? It is not, and
from its nature cannot be, the property of any particular man or family, but of
the whole community, at whose expense it is supported; and though by force and
contrivance it has been usurped into an inheritance, the usurpation cannot
alter the right of things. Sovereignty, as a matter of right, appertains to the
Nation only, and not to any individual; and a Nation has at all times an
inherent indefeasible right to abolish any form of Government it finds
inconvenient, and to establish such as accords with its interest, disposition
and happiness. The romantic and barbarous distinction of men into Kings and
subjects, though it may suit the condition of courtiers, cannot that of
citizens; and is exploded by the principle upon which Governments are now
founded. Every citizen is a member of the Sovereignty, and, as such, can
acknowledge no personal subjection; and his obedience can be only to the laws.
When men
think of what Government is, they must necessarily suppose it to possess a
knowledge of all the objects and matters upon which its authority is to be
exercised. In this view of Government, the republican system, as established by
America and France, operates to embrace the whole of a Nation; and the
knowledge necessary to the interest of all the parts, is to be found in the
center, which the parts by representation form: But the old Governments are on
a construction that excludes knowledge as well as happiness; government by
Monks, who knew nothing of the world beyond the walls of a Convent, is as
consistent as government by Kings.
What were
formerly called Revolutions, were little more than a change of persons, or an
alteration of local circumstances. They rose and fell like things of course,
and had nothing in their existence or their fate that could influence beyond
the spot that produced them. But what we now see in the world, from the
Revolutions of America and France, are a renovation of the natural order of
things, a system of principles as universal as truth and the existence of man,
and combining moral with political happiness and national prosperity.
"I.
Men are born, and always continue, free and equal in respect of their rights.
Civil distinctions, therefore, can be founded only on public utility.
"II.
The end of all political associations is the preservation of the natural and imprescriptible
rights of man; and these rights are liberty, property, security, and resistance
of oppression.
"III.
The nation is essentially the source of all sovereignty; nor can any
INDIVIDUAL, or ANY BODY OF MEN, be entitled to any authority which is not
expressly derived from it."
In these
principles, there is nothing to throw a Nation into confusion by inflaming
ambition. They are calculated to call forth wisdom and abilities, and to
exercise them for the public good, and not for the emolument or aggrandisement
of particular descriptions of men or families. Monarchical sovereignty, the
enemy of mankind, and the source of misery, is abolished; and the sovereignty
itself is restored to its natural and original place, the Nation. Were this the
case throughout Europe, the cause of wars would be taken away.
It is
attributed to Henry the Fourth of France, a man of enlarged and benevolent
heart, that he proposed, about the year 1610, a plan for abolishing war in
Europe. The plan consisted in constituting an European Congress, or as the
French authors style it, a Pacific Republic; by appointing delegates from the
several Nations who were to act as a Court of arbitration in any disputes that
might arise between nation and nation.
Had such a
plan been adopted at the time it was proposed, the taxes of England and France,
as two of the parties, would have been at least ten millions sterling annually
to each Nation less than they were at the commencement of the French
Revolution.
To conceive
a cause why such a plan has not been adopted (and that instead of a Congress
for the purpose of preventing war, it has been called only to terminate a war,
after a fruitless expense of several years) it will be necessary to consider
the interest of Governments as a distinct interest to that of Nations.
Whatever is
the cause of taxes to a Nation, becomes also the means of revenue to
Government. Every war terminates with an addition of taxes, and consequently
with an addition of revenue; and in any event of war, in the manner they are
now commenced and concluded, the power and interest of Governments are
increased. War, therefore, from its productiveness, as it easily furnishes the
pretence of necessity for taxes and appointments to places and offices, becomes
a principal part of the system of old Governments; and to establish any mode to
abolish war, however advantageous it might be to Nations, would be to take from
such Government the most lucrative of its branches. The frivolous matters upon
which war is made, show the disposition and avidity of Governments to uphold
the system of war, and betray the motives upon which they act.
Why are not
Republics plunged into war, but because the nature of their Government does not
admit of an interest distinct from that of the Nation? Even Holland, though an
ill-constructed Republic, and with a commerce extending over the world, existed
nearly a century without war: and the instant the form of Government was
changed in France, the republican principles of peace and domestic prosperity and
economy arose with the new Government; and the same consequences would follow
the cause in other Nations.
As war is
the system of Government on the old construction, the animosity which Nations
reciprocally entertain, is nothing more than what the policy of their
Governments excites to keep up the spirit of the system. Each Government
accuses the other of perfidy, intrigue, and ambition, as a means of heating the
imagination of their respective Nations, and incensing them to hostilities. Man
is not the enemy of man, but through the medium of a false system of
Government. Instead, therefore, of exclaiming against the ambition of Kings,
the exclamation should be directed against the principle of such Governments;
and instead of seeking to reform the individual, the wisdom of a Nation should
apply itself to reform the system.
Whether the
forms and maxims of Governments which are still in practice, were adapted to
the condition of the world at the period they were established, is not in this
case the question. The older they are, the less correspondence can they have
with the present state of things. Time, and change of circumstances and
opinions, have the same progressive effect in rendering modes of Government
obsolete as they have upon customs and manners.- Agriculture, commerce,
manufactures, and the tranquil arts, by which the prosperity of Nations is best
promoted, require a different system of Government, and a different species of
knowledge to direct its operations, than what might have been required in the
former condition of the world.
As it is
not difficult to perceive, from the enlightened state of mankind, that
hereditary Governments are verging to their decline, and that Revolutions on
the broad basis of national sovereignty and Government by representation, are
making their way in Europe, it would be an act of wisdom to anticipate their
approach, and produce Revolutions by reason and accommodation, rather than
commit them to the issue of convulsions.
From what
we now see, nothing of reform in the political world ought to be held
improbable. It is an age of Revolutions, in which everything may be looked for.
The intrigue of Courts, by which the system of war is kept up, may provoke a
confederation of Nations to abolish it: and an European Congress to patronise
the progress of free Government, and promote the civilisation of Nations with
each other, is an event nearer in probability, than once were the revolutions
and alliance of France and America.
Part the Second
COMBINING PRINCIPLE AND PRACTICE
To M. de la
Fayette
After an
acquaintance of nearly fifteen years in difficult situations in America, and
various consultations in Europe, I feel a pleasure in presenting to you this
small treatise, in gratitude for your services to my beloved America, and as a
testimony of my esteem for the virtues, public and private, which I know you to
possess.
The only
point upon which I could ever discover that we differed was not as to
principles of government, but as to time. For my own part I think it equally as
injurious to good principles to permit them to linger, as to push them on too
fast. That which you suppose accomplishable in fourteen or fifteen years, I may
believe practicable in a much shorter period. Mankind, as it appears to me, are
always ripe enough to understand their true interest, provided it be presented
clearly to their understanding, and that in a manner not to create suspicion by
anything like self-design, nor offend by assuming too much. Where we would wish
to reform we must not reproach.
When the
American revolution was established I felt a disposition to sit serenely down
and enjoy the calm. It did not appear to me that any object could afterwards
arise great enough to make me quit tranquility and feel as I had felt before.
But when principle, and not place, is the energetic cause of action, a man, I
find, is everywhere the same.
I am now
once more in the public world; and as I have not a right to contemplate on so
many years of remaining life as you have, I have resolved to labour as fast as
I can; and as I am anxious for your aid and your company, I wish you to hasten
your principles and overtake me.
If you make
a campaign the ensuing spring, which it is most probable there will be no
occasion for, I will come and join you. Should the campaign commence, I hope it
will terminate in the extinction of German despotism, and in establishing the
freedom of all Germany. When France shall be surrounded with revolutions she
will be in peace and safety, and her taxes, as well as those of Germany, will
consequently become less.
Your
sincere,
Affectionate
Friend,
LONDON,
Feb. 9, 1792
THOMAS
PAINE
Preface
When I
began the chapter entitled the "Conclusion" in the former part of the
RIGHTS OF MAN, published last year, it was my intention to have extended it to
a greater length; but in casting the whole matter in my mind, which I wish to
add, I found that it must either make the work too bulky, or contract my plan
too much. I therefore brought it to a close as soon as the subject would admit,
and reserved what I had further to say to another opportunity.
Several
other reasons contributed to produce this determination. I wished to know the
manner in which a work, written in a style of thinking and expression different
to what had been customary in England, would be received before I proceeded
farther. A great field was opening to the view of mankind by means of the
French Revolution. Mr. Burke's outrageous opposition thereto brought the
controversy into England. He attacked principles which he knew (from
information) I would contest with him, because they are principles I believe to
be good, and which I have contributed to establish, and conceive myself bound
to defend. Had he not urged the controversy, I had most probably been a silent
man.
Another
reason for deferring the remainder of the work was, that Mr. Burke promised in
his first publication to renew the subject at another opportunity, and to make
a comparison of what he called the English and French Constitutions. I
therefore held myself in reserve for him. He has published two works since,
without doing this: which he certainly would not have omitted, had the
comparison been in his favour.
In his last
work, his "Appeal from the New to the Old Whigs," he has quoted about
ten pages from the RIGHTS OF MAN, and having given himself the trouble of doing
this, says he "shall not attempt in the smallest degree to refute
them," meaning the principles therein contained. I am enough acquainted
with Mr. Burke to know that he would if he could. But instead of contesting
them, he immediately after consoles himself with saying that "he has done
his part."- He has not done his part. He has not performed his promise of
a comparison of constitutions. He started the controversy, he gave the
challenge, and has fled from it; and he is now a case in point with his own
opinion that "the age of chivalry is gone!"
The title,
as well as the substance of his last work, his "Appeal," is his
condemnation. Principles must stand on their own merits, and if they are good
they certainly will. To put them under the shelter of other men's authority, as
Mr. Burke has done, serves to bring them into suspicion. Mr. Burke is not very
fond of dividing his honours, but in this case he is artfully dividing the
disgrace.
But who are
those to whom Mr. Burke has made his appeal? A set of childish thinkers, and
half-way politicians born in the last century, men who went no farther with any
principle than as it suited their purposes as a party; the nation was always
left out of the question; and this has been the character of every party from
that day to this. The nation sees nothing of such works, or such politics,
worthy its attention. A little matter will move a party, but it must be
something great that moves a nation.
Though I
see nothing in Mr. Burke's "Appeal" worth taking much notice of,
there is, however, one expression upon which I shall offer a few remarks. After
quoting largely from the RIGHTS OF MAN, and declining to contest the principles
contained in that work, he says: "This will most probably be done (if such
writings shall be thought to deserve any other refutation than that of criminal
justice) by others, who may think with Mr. Burke and with the same zeal."
In the
first place, it has not yet been done by anybody. Not less, I believe, than
eight or ten pamphlets intended as answers to the former part of the RIGHTS OF
MAN have been published by different persons, and not one of them to my
knowledge, has extended to a second edition, nor are even the titles of them so
much as generally remembered. As I am averse to unnecessary multiplying
publications, I have answered none of them. And as I believe that a man may
write himself out of reputation when nobody else can do it, I am careful to
avoid that rock.
But as I
would decline unnecessary publications on the one hand, so would I avoid
everything that might appear like sullen pride on the other. If Mr. Burke, or
any person on his side the question, will produce an answer to the RIGHTS OF
MAN that shall extend to a half, or even to a fourth part of the number of
copies to which the RIGHTS OF MAN extended, I will reply to his work. But until
this be done, I shall so far take the sense of the public for my guide (and the
world knows I am not a flatterer) that what they do not think worth while to
read, is not worth mine to answer. I suppose the number of copies to which the
first part of the RIGHTS OF MAN extended, taking England, Scotland, and
Ireland, is not less than between forty and fifty thousand.
I now come
to remark on the remaining part of the quotation I have made from Mr. Burke.
"If,"
says he, "such writings shall be thought to deserve any other refutation
than that of criminal justice."
Pardoning
the pun, it must be criminal justice indeed that should condemn a work as a
substitute for not being able to refute it. The greatest condemnation that
could be passed upon it would be a refutation. But in proceeding by the method
Mr. Burke alludes to, the condemnation would, in the final event, pass upon the
criminality of the process and not upon the work, and in this case, I had
rather be the author, than be either the judge or the jury that should condemn
it.
But to come
at once to the point. I have differed from some professional gentlemen on the
subject of prosecutions, and I since find they are falling into my opinion,
which I will here state as fully, but as concisely as I can.
I will
first put a case with respect to any law, and then compare it with a
government, or with what in England is, or has been, called a constitution.
It would be
an act of despotism, or what in England is called arbitrary power, to make a
law to prohibit investigating the principles, good or bad, on which such a law,
or any other is founded.
If a law be
bad it is one thing to oppose the practice of it, but it is quite a different
thing to expose its errors, to reason on its defects, and to show cause why it
should be repealed, or why another ought to be substituted in its place. I have
always held it an opinion (making it also my practice) that it is better to
obey a bad law, making use at the same time of every argument to show its
errors and procure its repeal, than forcibly to violate it; because the
precedent of breaking a bad law might weaken the force, and lead to a
discretionary violation, of those which are good.
The case is
the same with respect to principles and forms of government, or to what are
called constitutions and the parts of which they are, composed.
It is for
the good of nations and not for the emolument or aggrandisement of particular
individuals, that government ought to be established, and that mankind are at
the expense of supporting it. The defects of every government and constitution
both as to principle and form, must, on a parity of reasoning, be as open to
discussion as the defects of a law, and it is a duty which every man owes to
society to point them out. When those defects, and the means of remedying them,
are generally seen by a nation, that nation will reform its government or its
constitution in the one case, as the government repealed or reformed the law in
the other. The operation of government is restricted to the making and the
administering of laws; but it is to a nation that the right of forming or
reforming, generating or regenerating constitutions and governments belong; and
consequently those subjects, as subjects of investigation, are always before a
country as a matter of right, and cannot, without invading the general rights
of that country, be made subjects for prosecution. On this ground I will meet
Mr. Burke whenever he please. It is better that the whole argument should come
out than to seek to stifle it. It was himself that opened the controversy, and
he ought not to desert it.
I do not
believe that monarchy and aristocracy will continue seven years longer in any
of the enlightened countries in Europe. If better reasons can be shown for them
than against them, they will stand; if the contrary, they will not. Mankind are
not now to be told they shall not think, or they shall not read; and
publications that go no farther than to investigate principles of government,
to invite men to reason and to reflect, and to show the errors and excellences
of different systems, have a right to appear. If they do not excite attention,
they are not worth the trouble of a prosecution; and if they do, the
prosecution will amount to nothing, since it cannot amount to a prohibition of
reading. This would be a sentence on the public, instead of the author, and
would also be the most effectual mode of making or hastening revolution.
On all
cases that apply universally to a nation, with respect to systems of
government, a jury of twelve men is not competent to decide. Where there are no
witnesses to be examined, no facts to be proved, and where the whole matter is
before the whole public, and the merits or demerits of it resting on their
opinion; and where there is nothing to be known in a court, but what every body
knows out of it, every twelve men is equally as good a jury as the other, and
would most probably reverse each other's verdict; or, from the variety of their
opinions, not be able to form one. It is one case, whether a nation approve a
work, or a plan; but it is quite another case, whether it will commit to any
such jury the power of determining whether that nation have a right to, or
shall reform its government or not. I mention those cases that Mr. Burke may
see I have not written on Government without reflecting on what is Law, as well
as on what are Rights.- The only effectual jury in such cases would be a
convention of the whole nation fairly elected; for in all such cases the whole
nation is the vicinage. If Mr. Burke will propose such a jury, I will waive all
privileges of being the citizen of another country, and, defending its
principles, abide the issue, provided he will do the same; for my opinion is,
that his work and his principles would be condemned instead of mine.
As to the
prejudices which men have from education and habit, in favour of any particular
form or system of government, those prejudices have yet to stand the test of
reason and reflection. In fact, such prejudices are nothing. No man is
prejudiced in favour of a thing, knowing it to be wrong. He is attached to it
on the belief of its being right; and when he sees it is not so, the prejudice
will be gone. We have but a defective idea of what prejudice is. It might be
said, that until men think for themselves the whole is prejudice, and not
opinion; for that only is opinion which is the result of reason and reflection.
I offer this remark, that Mr. Burke may not confide too much in what have been
the customary prejudices of the country.
I do not
believe that the people of England have ever been fairly and candidly dealt by.
They have been imposed upon by parties, and by men assuming the character of
leaders. It is time that the nation should rise above those trifles. It is time
to dismiss that inattention which has so long been the encouraging cause of
stretching taxation to excess. It is time to dismiss all those songs and toasts
which are calculated to enslave, and operate to suffocate reflection. On all
such subjects men have but to think, and they will neither act wrong nor be
misled. To say that any people are not fit for freedom, is to make poverty
their choice, and to say they had rather be loaded with taxes than not. If such
a case could be proved, it would equally prove that those who govern are not
fit to govern them, for they are a part of the same national mass.
But
admitting governments to be changed all over Europe; it certainly may be done
without convulsion or revenge. It is not worth making changes or revolutions,
unless it be for some great national benefit: and when this shall appear to a
nation, the danger will be, as in America and France, to those who oppose; and
with this reflection I close my Preface.
THOMAS
PAINE LONDON, Feb. 9, 1792
Introduction
What
Archimedes said of the mechanical powers, may be applied to Reason and Liberty.
"Had we," said he, "a place to stand upon, we might raise the
world."
The
revolution of America presented in politics what was only theory in mechanics.
So deeply rooted were all the governments of the old world, and so effectually
had the tyranny and the antiquity of habit established itself over the mind,
that no beginning could be made in Asia, Africa, or Europe, to reform the
political condition of man. Freedom had been hunted round the globe; reason was
considered as rebellion; and the slavery of fear had made men afraid to think.
But such is
the irresistible nature of truth, that all it asks,- and all it wants,- is the
liberty of appearing. The sun needs no inscription to distinguish him from
darkness; and no sooner did the American governments display themselves to the
world, than despotism felt a shock and man began to contemplate redress.
The
independence of America, considered merely as a separation from England, would
have been a matter but of little importance, had it not been accompanied by a
revolution in the principles and practice of governments. She made a stand, not
for herself only, but for the world, and looked beyond the advantages herself
could receive. Even the Hessian, though hired to fight against her, may live to
bless his defeat; and England, condemning the viciousness of its government,
rejoice in its miscarriage.
As America
was the only spot in the political world where the principle of universal
reformation could begin, so also was it the best in the natural world. An
assemblage of circumstances conspired, not only to give birth, but to add
gigantic maturity to its principles. The scene which that country presents to
the eye of a spectator, has something in it which generates and encourages
great ideas. Nature appears to him in magnitude. The mighty objects he beholds,
act upon his mind by enlarging it, and he partakes of the greatness he
contemplates.- Its first settlers were emigrants from different European
nations, and of diversified professions of religion, retiring from the
governmental persecutions of the old world, and meeting in the new, not as
enemies, but as brothers. The wants which necessarily accompany the cultivation
of a wilderness produced among them a state of society, which countries long
harassed by the quarrels and intrigues of governments, had neglected to
cherish. In such a situation man becomes what he ought. He sees his species,
not with the inhuman idea of a natural enemy, but as kindred; and the example
shows to the artificial world, that man must go back to Nature for information.
From the
rapid progress which America makes in every species of improvement, it is
rational to conclude that, if the governments of Asia, Africa, and Europe had
begun on a principle similar to that of America, or had not been very early
corrupted therefrom, those countries must by this time have been in a far
superior condition to what they are. Age after age has passed away, for no
other purpose than to behold their wretchedness. Could we suppose a spectator
who knew nothing of the world, and who was put into it merely to make his
observations, he would take a great part of the old world to be new, just
struggling with the difficulties and hardships of an infant settlement. He
could not suppose that the hordes of miserable poor with which old countries
abound could be any other than those who had not yet had time to provide for
themselves. Little would he think they were the consequence of what in such
countries they call government.
If, from
the more wretched parts of the old world, we look at those which are in an
advanced stage of improvement we still find the greedy hand of government
thrusting itself into every corner and crevice of industry, and grasping the
spoil of the multitude. Invention is continually exercised to furnish new
pretences for revenue and taxation. It watches prosperity as its prey, and
permits none to escape without a tribute.
As
revolutions have begun (and as the probability is always greater against a
thing beginning, than of proceeding after it has begun), it is natural to expect
that other revolutions will follow. The amazing and still increasing expenses
with which old governments are conducted, the numerous wars they engage in or
provoke, the embarrassments they throw in the way of universal civilisation and
commerce, and the oppression and usurpation acted at home, have wearied out the
patience, and exhausted the property of the world. In such a situation, and
with such examples already existing, revolutions are to be looked for. They are
become subjects of universal conversation, and may be considered as the Order
of the day.
If systems
of government can be introduced less expensive and more productive of general
happiness than those which have existed, all attempts to oppose their progress
will in the end be fruitless. Reason, like time, will make its own way, and
prejudice will fall in a combat with interest. If universal peace,
civilisation, and commerce are ever to be the happy lot of man, it cannot be
accomplished but by a revolution in the system of governments. All the
monarchical governments are military. War is their trade, plunder and revenue
their objects. While such governments continue, peace has not the absolute
security of a day. What is the history of all monarchical governments but a
disgustful picture of human wretchedness, and the accidental respite of a few
years' repose? Wearied with war, and tired with human butchery, they sat down
to rest, and called it peace. This certainly is not the condition that heaven
intended for man; and if this be monarchy, well might monarchy be reckoned
among the sins of the Jews.
The
revolutions which formerly took place in the world had nothing in them that
interested the bulk of mankind. They extended only to a change of persons and
measures, but not of principles, and rose or fell among the common transactions
of the moment. What we now behold may not improperly be called a
"counter-revolution." Conquest and tyranny, at some earlier period,
dispossessed man of his rights, and he is now recovering them. And as the tide
of all human affairs has its ebb and flow in directions contrary to each other,
so also is it in this. Government founded on a moral theory, on a system of
universal peace, on the indefeasible hereditary Rights of Man, is now revolving
from west to east by a stronger impulse than the government of the sword
revolved from east to west. It interests not particular individuals, but
nations in its progress, and promises a new era to the human race.
The danger
to which the success of revolutions is most exposed is that of attempting them
before the principles on which they proceed, and the advantages to result from
them, are sufficiently seen and understood. Almost everything appertaining to
the circumstances of a nation, has been absorbed and confounded under the
general and mysterious word government. Though it avoids taking to its account
the errors it commits, and the mischiefs it occasions, it fails not to arrogate
to itself whatever has the appearance of prosperity. It robs industry of its
honours, by pedantically making itself the cause of its effects; and purloins
from the general character of man, the merits that appertain to him as a social
being.
It may
therefore be of use in this day of revolutions to discriminate between those
things which are the effect of government, and those which are not. This will
best be done by taking a review of society and civilisation, and the
consequences resulting therefrom, as things distinct from what are called
governments. By beginning with this investigation, we shall be able to assign
effects to their proper causes and analyse the mass of common errors.
CHAPTER I
Of Society
and Civilisation
Great part
of that order which reigns among mankind is not the effect of government. It
has its origin in the principles of society and the natural constitution of
man. It existed prior to government, and would exist if the formality of
government was abolished. The mutual dependence and reciprocal interest which
man has upon man, and all the parts of civilised community upon each other,
create that great chain of connection which holds it together. The landholder,
the farmer, the manufacturer, the merchant, the tradesman, and every
occupation, prospers by the aid which each receives from the other, and from
the whole. Common interest regulates their concerns, and forms their law; and
the laws which common usage ordains, have a greater influence than the laws of
government. In fine, society performs for itself almost everything which is
ascribed to government.
To
understand the nature and quantity of government proper for man, it is
necessary to attend to his character. As Nature created him for social life,
she fitted him for the station she intended. In all cases she made his natural
wants greater than his individual powers. No one man is capable, without the
aid of society, of supplying his own wants, and those wants, acting upon every
individual, impel the whole of them into society, as naturally as gravitation
acts to a centre.
But she has
gone further. She has not only forced man into society by a diversity of wants
which the reciprocal aid of each other can supply, but she has implanted in him
a system of social affections, which, though not necessary to his existence,
are essential to his happiness. There is no period in life when this love for
society ceases to act. It begins and ends with our being.
If we
examine with attention into the composition and constitution of man, the
diversity of his wants, and the diversity of talents in different men for
reciprocally accommodating the wants of each other, his propensity to society,
and consequently to preserve the advantages resulting from it, we shall easily
discover, that a great part of what is called government is mere imposition.
Government
is no farther necessary than to supply the few cases to which society and
civilisation are not conveniently competent; and instances are not wanting to
show, that everything which government can usefully add thereto, has been
performed by the common consent of society, without government.
For upwards
of two years from the commencement of the American War, and to a longer period
in several of the American States, there were no established forms of
government. The old governments had been abolished, and the country was too
much occupied in defence to employ its attention in establishing new
governments; yet during this interval order and harmony were preserved as
inviolate as in any country in Europe. There is a natural aptness in man, and
more so in society, because it embraces a greater variety of abilities and
resource, to accommodate itself to whatever situation it is in. The instant
formal government is abolished, society begins to act: a general association
takes place, and common interest produces common security.
So far is
it from being true, as has been pretended, that the abolition of any formal
government is the dissolution of society, that it acts by a contrary impulse,
and brings the latter the closer together. All that part of its organisation
which it had committed to its government, devolves again upon itself, and acts
through its medium. When men, as well from natural instinct as from reciprocal
benefits, have habituated themselves to social and civilised life, there is
always enough of its principles in practice to carry them through any changes
they may find necessary or convenient to make in their government. In short,
man is so naturally a creature of society that it is almost impossible to put
him out of it.
Formal
government makes but a small part of civilised life; and when even the best
that human wisdom can devise is established, it is a thing more in name and
idea than in fact. It is to the great and fundamental principles of society and
civilisation- to the common usage universally consented to, and mutually and reciprocally
maintained- to the unceasing circulation of interest, which, passing through
its million channels, invigorates the whole mass of civilised man- it is to
these things, infinitely more than to anything which even the best instituted
government can perform, that the safety and prosperity of the individual and of
the whole depends.
The more
perfect civilisation is, the less occasion has it for government, because the
more does it regulate its own affairs, and govern itself; but so contrary is
the practice of old governments to the reason of the case, that the expenses of
them increase in the proportion they ought to diminish. It is but few general
laws that civilised life requires, and those of such common usefulness, that
whether they are enforced by the forms of government or not, the effect will be
nearly the same. If we consider what the principles are that first condense men
into society, and what are the motives that regulate their mutual intercourse
afterwards, we shall find, by the time we arrive at what is called government,
that nearly the whole of the business is performed by the natural operation of
the parts upon each other.
Man, with
respect to all those matters, is more a creature of consistency than he is
aware, or than governments would wish him to believe. All the great laws of
society are laws of nature. Those of trade and commerce, whether with respect
to the intercourse of individuals or of nations, are laws of mutual and
reciprocal interest. They are followed and obeyed, because it is the interest
of the parties so to do, and not on account of any formal laws their
governments may impose or interpose.
But how
often is the natural propensity to society disturbed or destroyed by the
operations of government! When the latter, instead of being ingrafted on the
principles of the former, assumes to exist for itself, and acts by partialities
of favour and oppression, it becomes the cause of the mischiefs it ought to
prevent.
If we look
back to the riots and tumults which at various times have happened in England,
we shall find that they did not proceed from the want of a government, but that
government was itself the generating cause; instead of consolidating society it
divided it; it deprived it of its natural cohesion, and engendered discontents
and disorders which otherwise would not have existed. In those associations
which men promiscuously form for the purpose of trade, or of any concern in
which government is totally out of the question, and in which they act merely
on the principles of society, we see how naturally the various parties unite;
and this shows, by comparison, that governments, so far from being always the
cause or means of order, are often the destruction of it. The riots of 1780 had
no other source than the remains of those prejudices which the government
itself had encouraged. But with respect to England there are also other causes.
Excess and
inequality of taxation, however disguised in the means, never fail to appear in
their effects. As a great mass of the community are thrown thereby into poverty
and discontent, they are constantly on the brink of commotion; and deprived, as
they unfortunately are, of the means of information, are easily heated to
outrage. Whatever the apparent cause of any riots may be, the real one is
always want of happiness. It shows that something is wrong in the system of
government that injures the felicity by which society is to be preserved.
But as a
fact is superior to reasoning, the instance of America presents itself to
confirm these observations. If there is a country in the world where concord,
according to common calculation, would be least expected, it is America. Made
up as it is of people from different nations,*[16] accustomed to different
forms and habits of government, speaking different languages, and more
different in their modes of worship, it would appear that the union of such a
people was impracticable; but by the simple operation of constructing
government on the principles of society and the rights of man, every difficulty
retires, and all the parts are brought into cordial unison. There the poor are
not oppressed, the rich are not privileged. Industry is not mortified by the
splendid extravagance of a court rioting at its expense. Their taxes are few,
because their government is just: and as there is nothing to render them
wretched, there is nothing to engender riots and tumults.
A
metaphysical man, like Mr. Burke, would have tortured his invention to discover
how such a people could be governed. He would have supposed that some must be
managed by fraud, others by force, and all by some contrivance; that genius
must be hired to impose upon ignorance, and show and parade to fascinate the
vulgar. Lost in the abundance of his researches, he would have resolved and
re-resolved, and finally overlooked the plain and easy road that lay directly
before him.
One of the
great advantages of the American Revolution has been, that it led to a
discovery of the principles, and laid open the imposition, of governments. All
the revolutions till then had been worked within the atmosphere of a court, and
never on the grand floor of a nation. The parties were always of the class of
courtiers; and whatever was their rage for reformation, they carefully
preserved the fraud of the profession.
In all
cases they took care to represent government as a thing made up of mysteries,
which only themselves understood; and they hid from the understanding of the
nation the only thing that was beneficial to know, namely, That government is
nothing more than a national association adding on the principles of society.
Having thus
endeavoured to show that the social and civilised state of man is capable of
performing within itself almost everything necessary to its protection and
government, it will be proper, on the other hand, to take a review of the
present old governments, and examine whether their principles and practice are
correspondent thereto.
CHAPTER II
Of the
Origin of the Present Old Governments
It is
impossible that such governments as have hitherto existed in the world, could
have commenced by any other means than a total violation of every principle
sacred and moral. The obscurity in which the origin of all the present old
governments is buried, implies the iniquity and disgrace with which they began.
The origin of the present government of America and France will ever be
remembered, because it is honourable to record it; but with respect to the
rest, even Flattery has consigned them to the tomb of time, without an
inscription.
It could
have been no difficult thing in the early and solitary ages of the world, while
the chief employment of men was that of attending flocks and herds, for a
banditti of ruffians to overrun a country, and lay it under contributions.
Their power being thus established, the chief of the band contrived to lose the
name of Robber in that of Monarch; and hence the origin of Monarchy and Kings.
The origin
of the Government of England, so far as relates to what is called its line of monarchy,
being one of the latest, is perhaps the best recorded. The hatred which the
Norman invasion and tyranny begat, must have been deeply rooted in the nation,
to have outlived the contrivance to obliterate it. Though not a courtier will
talk of the curfew-bell, not a village in England has forgotten it.
Those bands
of robbers having parcelled out the world, and divided it into dominions,
began, as is naturally the case, to quarrel with each other. What at first was
obtained by violence was considered by others as lawful to be taken, and a
second plunderer succeeded the first. They alternately invaded the dominions
which each had assigned to himself, and the brutality with which they treated
each other explains the original character of monarchy. It was ruffian
torturing ruffian. The conqueror considered the conquered, not as his prisoner,
but his property. He led him in triumph rattling in chains, and doomed him, at
pleasure, to slavery or death. As time obliterated the history of their
beginning, their successors assumed new appearances, to cut off the entail of
their disgrace, but their principles and objects remained the same. What at
first was plunder, assumed the softer name of revenue; and the power originally
usurped, they affected to inherit.
From such
beginning of governments, what could be expected but a continued system of war
and extortion? It has established itself into a trade. The vice is not peculiar
to one more than to another, but is the common principle of all. There does not
exist within such governments sufficient stamina whereon to engraft
reformation; and the shortest and most effectual remedy is to begin anew on the
ground of the nation.
What scenes
of horror, what perfection of iniquity, present themselves in contemplating the
character and reviewing the history of such governments! If we would delineate
human nature with a baseness of heart and hypocrisy of countenance that
reflection would shudder at and humanity disown, it is kings, courts and
cabinets that must sit for the portrait. Man, naturally as he is, with all his
faults about him, is not up to the character.
Can we
possibly suppose that if governments had originated in a right principle, and
had not an interest in pursuing a wrong one, the world could have been in the wretched
and quarrelsome condition we have seen it? What inducement has the farmer,
while following the plough, to lay aside his peaceful pursuit, and go to war
with the farmer of another country? or what inducement has the manufacturer?
What is dominion to them, or to any class of men in a nation? Does it add an
acre to any man's estate, or raise its value? Are not conquest and defeat each
of the same price, and taxes the never-failing consequence?- Though this
reasoning may be good to a nation, it is not so to a government. War is the
Pharo-table of governments, and nations the dupes of the game.
If there is
anything to wonder at in this miserable scene of governments more than might be
expected, it is the progress which the peaceful arts of agriculture, manufacture
and commerce have made beneath such a long accumulating load of discouragement
and oppression. It serves to show that instinct in animals does not act with
stronger impulse than the principles of society and civilisation operate in
man. Under all discouragements, he pursues his object, and yields to nothing
but impossibilities.
CHAPTER III
Of the Old
and New Systems of Government
Nothing can
appear more contradictory than the principles on which the old governments
began, and the condition to which society, civilisation and commerce are
capable of carrying mankind. Government, on the old system, is an assumption of
power, for the aggrandisement of itself; on the new, a delegation of power for
the common benefit of society. The former supports itself by keeping up a
system of war; the latter promotes a system of peace, as the true means of
enriching a nation. The one encourages national prejudices; the other promotes
universal society, as the means of universal commerce. The one measures its prosperity,
by the quantity of revenue it extorts; the other proves its excellence, by the
small quantity of taxes it requires.
Mr. Burke
has talked of old and new whigs. If he can amuse himself with childish names
and distinctions, I shall not interrupt his pleasure. It is not to him, but to
the Abbe Sieyes, that I address this chapter. I am already engaged to the
latter gentleman to discuss the subject of monarchical government; and as it
naturally occurs in comparing the old and new systems, I make this the
opportunity of presenting to him my observations. I shall occasionally take Mr.
Burke in my way.
Though it
might be proved that the system of government now called the NEW, is the most
ancient in principle of all that have existed, being founded on the original,
inherent Rights of Man: yet, as tyranny and the sword have suspended the
exercise of those rights for many centuries past, it serves better the purpose
of distinction to call it the new, than to claim the right of calling it the
old.
The first general
distinction between those two systems, is, that the one now called the old is
hereditary, either in whole or in part; and the new is entirely representative.
It rejects all hereditary government:
First, As
being an imposition on mankind.
Secondly,
As inadequate to the purposes for which government is necessary.
With
respect to the first of these heads- It cannot be proved by what right
hereditary government could begin; neither does there exist within the compass
of mortal power a right to establish it. Man has no authority over posterity in
matters of personal right; and, therefore, no man, or body of men, had, or can
have, a right to set up hereditary government. Were even ourselves to come
again into existence, instead of being succeeded by posterity, we have not now
the right of taking from ourselves the rights which would then be ours. On what
ground, then, do we pretend to take them from others?
All
hereditary government is in its nature tyranny. An heritable crown, or an
heritable throne, or by what other fanciful name such things may be called,
have no other significant explanation than that mankind are heritable property.
To inherit a government, is to inherit the people, as if they were flocks and
herds.
With
respect to the second head, that of being inadequate to the purposes for which
government is necessary, we have only to consider what government essentially
is, and compare it with the circumstances to which hereditary succession is
subject.
Government
ought to be a thing always in full maturity. It ought to be so constructed as
to be superior to all the accidents to which individual man is subject; and,
therefore, hereditary succession, by being subject to them all, is the most
irregular and imperfect of all the systems of government.
We have
heard the Rights of Man called a levelling system; but the only system to which
the word levelling is truly applicable, is the hereditary monarchical system.
It is a system of mental levelling. It indiscriminately admits every species of
character to the same authority. Vice and virtue, ignorance and wisdom, in
short, every quality good or bad, is put on the same level. Kings succeed each
other, not as rationals, but as animals. It signifies not what their mental or
moral characters are. Can we then be surprised at the abject state of the human
mind in monarchical countries, when the government itself is formed on such an
abject levelling system?- It has no fixed character. To-day it is one thing;
to-morrow it is something else. It changes with the temper of every succeeding
individual, and is subject to all the varieties of each. It is government
through the medium of passions and accidents. It appears under all the various
characters of childhood, decrepitude, dotage, a thing at nurse, in leading-strings,
or in crutches. It reverses the wholesome order of nature. It occasionally puts
children over men, and the conceits of nonage over wisdom and experience. In
short, we cannot conceive a more ridiculous figure of government, than
hereditary succession, in all its cases, presents.
Could it be
made a decree in nature, or an edict registered in heaven, and man could know
it, that virtue and wisdom should invariably appertain to hereditary
succession, the objection to it would be removed; but when we see that nature
acts as if she disowned and sported with the hereditary system; that the mental
character of successors, in all countries, is below the average of human
understanding; that one is a tyrant, another an idiot, a third insane, and some
all three together, it is impossible to attach confidence to it, when reason in
man has power to act.
It is not
to the Abbe Sieyes that I need apply this reasoning; he has already saved me
that trouble by giving his own opinion upon the case. "If it be
asked," says he, "what is my opinion with respect to hereditary
right, I answer without hesitation, That in good theory, an hereditary
transmission of any power of office, can never accord with the laws of a true
representation. Hereditaryship is, in this sense, as much an attaint upon
principle, as an outrage upon society. But let us," continues he,
"refer to the history of all elective monarchies and principalities: is
there one in which the elective mode is not worse than the hereditary
succession?"
As to
debating on which is the worst of the two, it is admitting both to be bad; and
herein we are agreed. The preference which the Abbe has given, is a
condemnation of the thing that he prefers. Such a mode of reasoning on such a
subject is inadmissible, because it finally amounts to an accusation upon
Providence, as if she had left to man no other choice with respect to
government than between two evils, the best of which he admits to be "an
attaint upon principle, and an outrage upon society."
Passing
over, for the present, all the evils and mischiefs which monarchy has
occasioned in the world, nothing can more effectually prove its uselessness in
a state of civil government, than making it hereditary. Would we make any
office hereditary that required wisdom and abilities to fill it? And where
wisdom and abilities are not necessary, such an office, whatever it may be, is
superfluous or insignificant.
Hereditary
succession is a burlesque upon monarchy. It puts it in the most ridiculous
light, by presenting it as an office which any child or idiot may fill. It
requires some talents to be a common mechanic; but to be a king requires only
the animal figure of man- a sort of breathing automaton. This sort of
superstition may last a few years more, but it cannot long resist the awakened
reason and interest of man.
As to Mr.
Burke, he is a stickler for monarchy, not altogether as a pensioner, if he is
one, which I believe, but as a political man. He has taken up a contemptible
opinion of mankind, who, in their turn, are taking up the same of him. He
considers them as a herd of beings that must be governed by fraud, effigy, and
show; and an idol would be as good a figure of monarchy with him, as a man. I
will, however, do him the justice to say that, with respect to America, he has
been very complimentary. He always contended, at least in my hearing, that the
people of America were more enlightened than those of England, or of any
country in Europe; and that therefore the imposition of show was not necessary
in their governments.
Though the
comparison between hereditary and elective monarchy, which the Abbe has made,
is unnecessary to the case, because the representative system rejects both:
yet, were I to make the comparison, I should decide contrary to what he has
done.
The civil
wars which have originated from contested hereditary claims, are more numerous,
and have been more dreadful, and of longer continuance, than those which have
been occasioned by election. All the civil wars in France arose from the
hereditary system; they were either produced by hereditary claims, or by the
imperfection of the hereditary form, which admits of regencies or monarchy at
nurse. With respect to England, its history is full of the same misfortunes.
The contests for succession between the houses of York and Lancaster lasted a
whole century; and others of a similar nature have renewed themselves since
that period. Those of 1715 and 1745 were of the same kind. The succession war
for the crown of Spain embroiled almost half Europe. The disturbances of
Holland are generated from the hereditaryship of the Stadtholder. A government
calling itself free, with an hereditary office, is like a thorn in the flesh,
that produces a fermentation which endeavours to discharge it.
But I might
go further, and place also foreign wars, of whatever kind, to the same cause.
It is by adding the evil of hereditary succession to that of monarchy, that a
permanent family interest is created, whose constant objects are dominion and
revenue. Poland, though an elective monarchy, has had fewer wars than those
which are hereditary; and it is the only government that has made a voluntary
essay, though but a small one, to reform the condition of the country.
Having thus
glanced at a few of the defects of the old, or hereditary systems of
government, let us compare it with the new, or representative system.
The
representative system takes society and civilisation for its basis; nature,
reason, and experience, for its guide.
Experience,
in all ages, and in all countries, has demonstrated that it is impossible to
control Nature in her distribution of mental powers. She gives them as she
pleases. Whatever is the rule by which she, apparently to us, scatters them
among mankind, that rule remains a secret to man. It would be as ridiculous to
attempt to fix the hereditaryship of human beauty, as of wisdom. Whatever
wisdom constituently is, it is like a seedless plant; it may be reared when it
appears, but it cannot be voluntarily produced. There is always a sufficiency
somewhere in the general mass of society for all purposes; but with respect to
the parts of society, it is continually changing its place. It rises in one
to-day, in another to-morrow, and has most probably visited in rotation every
family of the earth, and again withdrawn.
As this is
in the order of nature, the order of government must necessarily follow it, or
government will, as we see it does, degenerate into ignorance. The hereditary
system, therefore, is as repugnant to human wisdom as to human rights; and is
as absurd as it is unjust.
As the
republic of letters brings forward the best literary productions, by giving to
genius a fair and universal chance; so the representative system of government
is calculated to produce the wisest laws, by collecting wisdom from where it
can be found. I smile to myself when I contemplate the ridiculous
insignificance into which literature and all the sciences would sink, were they
made hereditary; and I carry the same idea into governments. An hereditary
governor is as inconsistent as an hereditary author. I know not whether Homer
or Euclid had sons; but I will venture an opinion that if they had, and had
left their works unfinished, those sons could not have completed them.
Do we need
a stronger evidence of the absurdity of hereditary government than is seen in
the descendants of those men, in any line of life, who once were famous? Is
there scarcely an instance in which there is not a total reverse of the
character? It appears as if the tide of mental faculties flowed as far as it
could in certain channels, and then forsook its course, and arose in others.
How irrational then is the hereditary system, which establishes channels of
power, in company with which wisdom refuses to flow! By continuing this
absurdity, man is perpetually in contradiction with himself; he accepts, for a
king, or a chief magistrate, or a legislator, a person whom he would not elect
for a constable.
It appears
to general observation, that revolutions create genius and talents; but those
events do no more than bring them forward. There is existing in man, a mass of
sense lying in a dormant state, and which, unless something excites it to
action, will descend with him, in that condition, to the grave. As it is to the
advantage of society that the whole of its faculties should be employed, the
construction of government ought to be such as to bring forward, by a quiet and
regular operation, all that extent of capacity which never fails to appear in
revolutions.
This cannot
take place in the insipid state of hereditary government, not only because it
prevents, but because it operates to benumb. When the mind of a nation is bowed
down by any political superstition in its government, such as hereditary
succession is, it loses a considerable portion of its powers on all other
subjects and objects. Hereditary succession requires the same obedience to
ignorance, as to wisdom; and when once the mind can bring itself to pay this
indiscriminate reverence, it descends below the stature of mental manhood. It
is fit to be great only in little things. It acts a treachery upon itself, and
suffocates the sensations that urge the detection.
Though the
ancient governments present to us a miserable picture of the condition of man,
there is one which above all others exempts itself from the general
description. I mean the democracy of the Athenians. We see more to admire, and
less to condemn, in that great, extraordinary people, than in anything which
history affords.
Mr. Burke
is so little acquainted with constituent principles of government, that he
confounds democracy and representation together. Representation was a thing
unknown in the ancient democracies. In those the mass of the people met and
enacted laws (grammatically speaking) in the first person. Simple democracy was
no other than the common hall of the ancients. It signifies the form, as well
as the public principle of the government. As those democracies increased in
population, and the territory extended, the simple democratical form became
unwieldy and impracticable; and as the system of representation was not known,
the consequence was, they either degenerated convulsively into monarchies, or
became absorbed into such as then existed. Had the system of representation
been then understood, as it now is, there is no reason to believe that those
forms of government, now called monarchical or aristocratical, would ever have
taken place. It was the want of some method to consolidate the parts of
society, after it became too populous, and too extensive for the simple
democratical form, and also the lax and solitary condition of shepherds and
herdsmen in other parts of the world, that afforded opportunities to those
unnatural modes of government to begin.
As it is
necessary to clear away the rubbish of errors, into which the subject of
government has been thrown, I will proceed to remark on some others.
It has
always been the political craft of courtiers and court-governments, to abuse
something which they called republicanism; but what republicanism was, or is,
they never attempt to explain. let us examine a little into this case.
The only
forms of government are the democratical, the aristocratical, the monarchical,
and what is now called the representative.
What is
called a republic is not any particular form of government. It is wholly
characteristical of the purport, matter or object for which government ought to
be instituted, and on which it is to be employed, RES-PUBLICA, the public
affairs, or the public good; or, literally translated, the public thing. It is
a word of a good original, referring to what ought to be the character and
business of government; and in this sense it is naturally opposed to the word
monarchy, which has a base original signification. It means arbitrary power in
an individual person; in the exercise of which, himself, and not the
res-publica, is the object.
Every
government that does not act on the principle of a Republic, or in other words,
that does not make the res-publica its whole and sole object, is not a good
government. Republican government is no other than government established and
conducted for the interest of the public, as well individually as collectively.
It is not necessarily connected with any particular form, but it most naturally
associates with the representative form, as being best calculated to secure the
end for which a nation is at the expense of supporting it.
Various
forms of government have affected to style themselves a republic. Poland calls
itself a republic, which is an hereditary aristocracy, with what is called an
elective monarchy. Holland calls itself a republic, which is chiefly
aristocratical, with an hereditary stadtholdership. But the government of
America, which is wholly on the system of representation, is the only real
Republic, in character and in practice, that now exists. Its government has no
other object than the public business of the nation, and therefore it is
properly a republic; and the Americans have taken care that THIS, and no other,
shall always be the object of their government, by their rejecting everything
hereditary, and establishing governments on the system of representation only.
Those who have said that a republic is not a form of government calculated for
countries of great extent, mistook, in the first place, the business of a
government, for a form of government; for the res-publica equally appertains to
every extent of territory and population. And, in the second place, if they
meant anything with respect to form, it was the simple democratical form, such
as was the mode of government in the ancient democracies, in which there was no
representation. The case, therefore, is not, that a republic cannot be
extensive, but that it cannot be extensive on the simple democratical form; and
the question naturally presents itself, What is the best form of government for
conducting the RES-PUBLICA, or the PUBLIC BUSINESS of a nation, after it
becomes too extensive and populous for the simple democratical form? It cannot
be monarchy, because monarchy is subject to an objection of the same amount to
which the simple democratical form was subject.
It is
possible that an individual may lay down a system of principles, on which
government shall be constitutionally established to any extent of territory.
This is no more than an operation of the mind, acting by its own powers. But
the practice upon those principles, as applying to the various and numerous
circumstances of a nation, its agriculture, manufacture, trade, commerce, etc.,
etc., a knowledge of a different kind, and which can be had only from the
various parts of society. It is an assemblage of practical knowledge, which no
individual can possess; and therefore the monarchical form is as much limited,
in useful practice, from the incompetency of knowledge, as was the democratical
form, from the multiplicity of population. The one degenerates, by extension,
into confusion; the other, into ignorance and incapacity, of which all the
great monarchies are an evidence. The monarchical form, therefore, could not be
a substitute for the democratical, because it has equal inconveniences.
Much less
could it when made hereditary. This is the most effectual of all forms to
preclude knowledge. Neither could the high democratical mind have voluntarily
yielded itself to be governed by children and idiots, and all the motley
insignificance of character, which attends such a mere animal system, the
disgrace and the reproach of reason and of man.
As to the
aristocratical form, it has the same vices and defects with the monarchical,
except that the chance of abilities is better from the proportion of numbers,
but there is still no security for the right use and application of them.*[17]
Referring
them to the original simple democracy, it affords the true data from which government
on a large scale can begin. It is incapable of extension, not from its
principle, but from the inconvenience of its form; and monarchy and
aristocracy, from their incapacity. Retaining, then, democracy as the ground,
and rejecting the corrupt systems of monarchy and aristocracy, the
representative system naturally presents itself; remedying at once the defects
of the simple democracy as to form, and the incapacity of the other two with
respect to knowledge.
Simple
democracy was society governing itself without the aid of secondary means. By
ingrafting representation upon democracy, we arrive at a system of government
capable of embracing and confederating all the various interests and every
extent of territory and population; and that also with advantages as much
superior to hereditary government, as the republic of letters is to hereditary
literature.
It is on
this system that the American government is founded. It is representation
ingrafted upon democracy. It has fixed the form by a scale parallel in all
cases to the extent of the principle. What Athens was in miniature America will
be in magnitude. The one was the wonder of the ancient world; the other is
becoming the admiration of the present. It is the easiest of all the forms of
government to be understood and the most eligible in practice; and excludes at
once the ignorance and insecurity of the hereditary mode, and the inconvenience
of the simple democracy.
It is
impossible to conceive a system of government capable of acting over such an extent
of territory, and such a circle of interests, as is immediately produced by the
operation of representation. France, great and populous as it is, is but a spot
in the capaciousness of the system. It is preferable to simple democracy even
in small territories. Athens, by representation, would have outrivalled her own
democracy.
That which
is called government, or rather that which we ought to conceive government to
be, is no more than some common center in which all the parts of society unite.
This cannot be accomplished by any method so conducive to the various interests
of the community, as by the representative system. It concentrates the
knowledge necessary to the interest of the parts, and of the whole. It places
government in a state of constant maturity. It is, as has already been
observed, never young, never old. It is subject neither to nonage, nor dotage.
It is never in the cradle, nor on crutches. It admits not of a separation
between knowledge and power, and is superior, as government always ought to be,
to all the accidents of individual man, and is therefore superior to what is
called monarchy.
A nation is
not a body, the figure of which is to be represented by the human body; but is
like a body contained within a circle, having a common center, in which every
radius meets; and that center is formed by representation. To connect
representation with what is called monarchy, is eccentric government.
Representation is of itself the delegated monarchy of a nation, and cannot
debase itself by dividing it with another.
Mr. Burke
has two or three times, in his parliamentary speeches, and in his publications,
made use of a jingle of words that convey no ideas. Speaking of government, he
says, "It is better to have monarchy for its basis, and republicanism for
its corrective, than republicanism for its basis, and monarchy for its
corrective."- If he means that it is better to correct folly with wisdom,
than wisdom with folly, I will no otherwise contend with him, than that it
would be much better to reject the folly entirely.
But what is
this thing which Mr. Burke calls monarchy? Will he explain it? All men can
understand what representation is; and that it must necessarily include a
variety of knowledge and talents. But what security is there for the same
qualities on the part of monarchy? or, when the monarchy is a child, where then
is the wisdom? What does it know about government? Who then is the monarch, or
where is the monarchy? If it is to be performed by regency, it proves to be a
farce. A regency is a mock species of republic, and the whole of monarchy
deserves no better description. It is a thing as various as imagination can
paint. It has none of the stable character that government ought to possess.
Every succession is a revolution, and every regency a counter-revolution. The
whole of it is a scene of perpetual court cabal and intrigue, of which Mr.
Burke is himself an instance. To render monarchy consistent with government,
the next in succession should not be born a child, but a man at once, and that
man a Solomon. It is ridiculous that nations are to wait and government be
interrupted till boys grow to be men.
Whether I
have too little sense to see, or too much to be imposed upon; whether I have
too much or too little pride, or of anything else, I leave out of the question;
but certain it is, that what is called monarchy, always appears to me a silly,
contemptible thing. I compare it to something kept behind a curtain, about
which there is a great deal of bustle and fuss, and a wonderful air of seeming
solemnity; but when, by any accident, the curtain happens to be open- and the
company see what it is, they burst into laughter.
In the
representative system of government, nothing of this can happen. Like the
nation itself, it possesses a perpetual stamina, as well of body as of mind,
and presents itself on the open theatre of the world in a fair and manly
manner. Whatever are its excellences or defects, they are visible to all. It
exists not by fraud and mystery; it deals not in cant and sophistry; but
inspires a language that, passing from heart to heart, is felt and understood.
We must
shut our eyes against reason, we must basely degrade our understanding, not to
see the folly of what is called monarchy. Nature is orderly in all her works;
but this is a mode of government that counteracts nature. It turns the progress
of the human faculties upside down. It subjects age to be governed by children,
and wisdom by folly.
On the contrary,
the representative system is always parallel with the order and immutable laws
of nature, and meets the reason of man in every part. For example:
In the
American Federal Government, more power is delegated to the President of the
United States than to any other individual member of Congress. He cannot,
therefore, be elected to this office under the age of thirty-five years. By
this time the judgment of man becomes more matured, and he has lived long
enough to be acquainted with men and things, and the country with him.- But on
the monarchial plan (exclusive of the numerous chances there are against every
man born into the world, of drawing a prize in the lottery of human faculties),
the next in succession, whatever he may be, is put at the head of a nation, and
of a government, at the age of eighteen years. Does this appear like an action
of wisdom? Is it consistent with the proper dignity and the manly character of
a nation? Where is the propriety of calling such a lad the father of the
people?- In all other cases, a person is a minor until the age of twenty-one
years. Before this period, he is not trusted with the management of an acre of
land, or with the heritable property of a flock of sheep, or an herd of swine;
but, wonderful to tell! he may, at the age of eighteen years, be trusted with a
nation.
That
monarchy is all a bubble, a mere court artifice to procure money, is evident
(at least to me) in every character in which it can be viewed. It would be
impossible, on the rational system of representative government, to make out a
bill of expenses to such an enormous amount as this deception admits.
Government is not of itself a very chargeable institution. The whole expense of
the federal government of America, founded, as I have already said, on the
system of representation, and extending over a country nearly ten times as
large as England, is but six hundred thousand dollars, or one hundred and
thirty-five thousand pounds sterling.
I presume
that no man in his sober senses will compare the character of any of the kings
of Europe with that of General Washington. Yet, in France, and also in England,
the expense of the civil list only, for the support of one man, is eight times
greater than the whole expense of the federal government in America. To assign
a reason for this, appears almost impossible. The generality of people in
America, especially the poor, are more able to pay taxes, than the generality
of people either in France or England.
But the
case is, that the representative system diffuses such a body of knowledge
throughout a nation, on the subject of government, as to explode ignorance and
preclude imposition. The craft of courts cannot be acted on that ground. There
is no place for mystery; nowhere for it to begin. Those who are not in the
representation, know as much of the nature of business as those who are. An
affectation of mysterious importance would there be scouted. Nations can have
no secrets; and the secrets of courts, like those of individuals, are always
their defects.
In the
representative system, the reason for everything must publicly appear. Every
man is a proprietor in government, and considers it a necessary part of his
business to understand. It concerns his interest, because it affects his
property. He examines the cost, and compares it with the advantages; and above
all, he does not adopt the slavish custom of following what in other
governments are called LEADERS.
It can only
be by blinding the understanding of man, and making him believe that government
is some wonderful mysterious thing, that excessive revenues are obtained.
Monarchy is well calculated to ensure this end. It is the popery of government;
a thing kept up to amuse the ignorant, and quiet them into taxes.
The
government of a free country, properly speaking, is not in the persons, but in
the laws. The enacting of those requires no great expense; and when they are
administered, the whole of civil government is performed- the rest is all court
contrivance.
CHAPTER IV
Of
Constitutions
That men
mean distinct and separate things when they speak of constitutions and of
governments, is evident; or why are those terms distinctly and separately used?
A constitution is not the act of a government, but of a people constituting a
government; and government without a constitution, is power without a right.
All power
exercised over a nation, must have some beginning. It must either be delegated
or assumed. There are no other sources. All delegated power is trust, and all
assumed power is usurpation. Time does not alter the nature and quality of
either.
In viewing
this subject, the case and circumstances of America present themselves as in
the beginning of a world; and our enquiry into the origin of government is
shortened, by referring to the facts that have arisen in our own day. We have
no occasion to roam for information into the obscure field of antiquity, nor
hazard ourselves upon conjecture. We are brought at once to the point of seeing
government begin, as if we had lived in the beginning of time. The real volume,
not of history, but of facts, is directly before us, unmutilated by
contrivance, or the errors of tradition.
I will here
concisely state the commencement of the American constitutions; by which the
difference between constitutions and governments will sufficiently appear.
It may not
appear improper to remind the reader that the United States of America consist
of thirteen separate states, each of which established a government for itself,
after the declaration of independence, done the 4th of July, 1776. Each state
acted independently of the rest, in forming its governments; but the same
general principle pervades the whole. When the several state governments were
formed, they proceeded to form the federal government, that acts over the whole
in all matters which concern the interest of the whole, or which relate to the
intercourse of the several states with each other, or with foreign nations. I
will begin with giving an instance from one of the state governments (that of
Pennsylvania) and then proceed to the federal government.
The state
of Pennsylvania, though nearly of the same extent of territory as England, was
then divided into only twelve counties. Each of those counties had elected a
committee at the commencement of the dispute with the English government; and
as the city of Philadelphia, which also had its committee, was the most central
for intelligence, it became the center of communication to the several country
committees. When it became necessary to proceed to the formation of a government,
the committee of Philadelphia proposed a conference of all the committees, to
be held in that city, and which met the latter end of July, 1776.
Though
these committees had been duly elected by the people, they were not elected
expressly for the purpose, nor invested with the authority of forming a
constitution; and as they could not, consistently with the American idea of
rights, assume such a power, they could only confer upon the matter, and put it
into a train of operation. The conferees, therefore, did no more than state the
case, and recommend to the several counties to elect six representatives for
each county, to meet in convention at Philadelphia, with powers to form a
constitution, and propose it for public consideration.
This
convention, of which Benjamin Franklin was president, having met and
deliberated, and agreed upon a constitution, they next ordered it to be
published, not as a thing established, but for the consideration of the whole
people, their approbation or rejection, and then adjourned to a stated time.
When the time of adjournment was expired, the convention re-assembled; and as
the general opinion of the people in approbation of it was then known, the
constitution was signed, sealed, and proclaimed on the authority of the people
and the original instrument deposited as a public record. The convention then
appointed a day for the general election of the representatives who were to
compose the government, and the time it should commence; and having done this
they dissolved, and returned to their several homes and occupations.
In this
constitution were laid down, first, a declaration of rights; then followed the
form which the government should have, and the powers it should possess- the
authority of the courts of judicature, and of juries- the manner in which
elections should be conducted, and the proportion of representatives to the
number of electors- the time which each succeeding assembly should continue,
which was one year- the mode of levying, and of accounting for the expenditure,
of public money- of appointing public officers, etc., etc., etc.
No article
of this constitution could be altered or infringed at the discretion of the
government that was to ensue. It was to that government a law. But as it would
have been unwise to preclude the benefit of experience, and in order also to
prevent the accumulation of errors, if any should be found, and to preserve an
unison of government with the circumstances of the state at all times, the
constitution provided that, at the expiration of every seven years, a
convention should be elected, for the express purpose of revising the
constitution, and making alterations, additions, or abolitions therein, if any
such should be found necessary.
Here we see
a regular process- a government issuing out of a constitution, formed by the
people in their original character; and that constitution serving, not only as
an authority, but as a law of control to the government. It was the political
bible of the state. Scarcely a family was without it. Every member of the
government had a copy; and nothing was more common, when any debate arose on
the principle of a bill, or on the extent of any species of authority, than for
the members to take the printed constitution out of their pocket, and read the chapter
with which such matter in debate was connected.
Having thus
given an instance from one of the states, I will show the proceedings by which
the federal constitution of the United States arose and was formed.
Congress,
at its two first meetings, in September 1774, and May 1775, was nothing more
than a deputation from the legislatures of the several provinces, afterwards
states; and had no other authority than what arose from common consent, and the
necessity of its acting as a public body. In everything which related to the
internal affairs of America, congress went no further than to issue
recommendations to the several provincial assemblies, who at discretion adopted
them or not. Nothing on the part of congress was compulsive; yet, in this
situation, it was more faithfully and affectionately obeyed than was any
government in Europe. This instance, like that of the national assembly in
France, sufficiently shows, that the strength of government does not consist in
any thing itself, but in the attachment of a nation, and the interest which a
people feel in supporting it. When this is lost, government is but a child in
power; and though, like the old government in France, it may harass individuals
for a while, it but facilitates its own fall.
After the declaration
of independence, it became consistent with the principle on which
representative government is founded, that the authority of congress should be
defined and established. Whether that authority should be more or less than
congress then discretionarily exercised was not the question. It was merely the
rectitude of the measure.
For this
purpose, the act, called the act of confederation (which was a sort of
imperfect federal constitution), was proposed, and, after long deliberation,
was concluded in the year 1781. It was not the act of congress, because it is
repugnant to the principles of representative government that a body should
give power to itself. Congress first informed the several states, of the powers
which it conceived were necessary to be invested in the union, to enable it to
perform the duties and services required from it; and the states severally
agreed with each other, and concentrated in congress those powers.
It may not
be improper to observe that in both those instances (the one of Pennsylvania,
and the other of the United States), there is no such thing as the idea of a
compact between the people on one side, and the government on the other. The
compact was that of the people with each other, to produce and constitute a
government. To suppose that any government can be a party in a compact with the
whole people, is to suppose it to have existence before it can have a right to
exist. The only instance in which a compact can take place between the people
and those who exercise the government, is, that the people shall pay them,
while they choose to employ them.
Government
is not a trade which any man, or any body of men, has a right to set up and
exercise for his own emolument, but is altogether a trust, in right of those by
whom that trust is delegated, and by whom it is always resumeable. It has of
itself no rights; they are altogether duties.
Having thus
given two instances of the original formation of a constitution, I will show
the manner in which both have been changed since their first establishment.
The powers
vested in the governments of the several states, by the state constitutions,
were found, upon experience, to be too great; and those vested in the federal
government, by the act of confederation, too little. The defect was not in the
principle, but in the distribution of power.
Numerous
publications, in pamphlets and in the newspapers, appeared, on the propriety
and necessity of new modelling the federal government. After some time of public
discussion, carried on through the channel of the press, and in conversations,
the state of Virginia, experiencing some inconvenience with respect to
commerce, proposed holding a continental conference; in consequence of which, a
deputation from five or six state assemblies met at Annapolis, in Maryland, in
1786. This meeting, not conceiving itself sufficiently authorised to go into
the business of a reform, did no more than state their general opinions of the
propriety of the measure, and recommend that a convention of all the states
should be held the year following.
The
convention met at Philadelphia in May, 1787, of which General Washington was
elected president. He was not at that time connected with any of the state
governments, or with congress. He delivered up his commission when the war
ended, and since then had lived a private citizen.
The
convention went deeply into all the subjects; and having, after a variety of
debate and investigation, agreed among themselves upon the several parts of a
federal constitution, the next question was, the manner of giving it authority
and practice.
For this
purpose they did not, like a cabal of courtiers, send for a Dutch Stadtholder,
or a German Elector; but they referred the whole matter to the sense and
interest of the country.
They first
directed that the proposed constitution should be published. Secondly, that
each state should elect a convention, expressly for the purpose of taking it
into consideration, and of ratifying or rejecting it; and that as soon as the
approbation and ratification of any nine states should be given, that those
states shall proceed to the election of their proportion of members to the new
federal government; and that the operation of it should then begin, and the
former federal government cease.
The several
states proceeded accordingly to elect their conventions. Some of those
conventions ratified the constitution by very large majorities, and two or
three unanimously. In others there were much debate and division of opinion. In
the Massachusetts convention, which met at Boston, the majority was not above
nineteen or twenty, in about three hundred members; but such is the nature of
representative government, that it quietly decides all matters by majority.
After the debate in the Massachusetts convention was closed, and the vote
taken, the objecting members rose and declared, "That though they had
argued and voted against it, because certain parts appeared to them in a
different light to what they appeared to other members; yet, as the vote had
decided in favour of the constitution as proposed, they should give it the same
practical support as if they had for it."
As soon as
nine states had concurred (and the rest followed in the order their conventions
were elected), the old fabric of the federal government was taken down, and the
new one erected, of which General Washington is president.- In this place I
cannot help remarking, that the character and services of this gentleman are
sufficient to put all those men called kings to shame. While they are receiving
from the sweat and labours of mankind, a prodigality of pay, to which neither
their abilities nor their services can entitle them, he is rendering every
service in his power, and refusing every pecuniary reward. He accepted no pay
as commander-in-chief; he accepts none as president of the United States.
After the
new federal constitution was established, the state of Pennsylvania, conceiving
that some parts of its own constitution required to be altered, elected a
convention for that purpose. The proposed alterations were published, and the
people concurring therein, they were established.
In forming
those constitutions, or in altering them, little or no inconvenience took
place. The ordinary course of things was not interrupted, and the advantages
have been much. It is always the interest of a far greater number of people in
a nation to have things right, than to let them remain wrong; and when public
matters are open to debate, and the public judgment free, it will not decide
wrong, unless it decides too hastily.
In the two
instances of changing the constitutions, the governments then in being were not
actors either way. Government has no right to make itself a party in any debate
respecting the principles or modes of forming, or of changing, constitutions.
It is not for the benefit of those who exercise the powers of government that
constitutions, and the governments issuing from them, are established. In all
those matters the right of judging and acting are in those who pay, and not in
those who receive.
A
constitution is the property of a nation, and not of those who exercise the
government. All the constitutions of America are declared to be established on
the authority of the people. In France, the word nation is used instead of the
people; but in both cases, a constitution is a thing antecedent to the
government, and always distinct there from.
In England
it is not difficult to perceive that everything has a constitution, except the
nation. Every society and association that is established, first agreed upon a
number of original articles, digested into form, which are its constitution. It
then appointed its officers, whose powers and authorities are described in that
constitution, and the government of that society then commenced. Those
officers, by whatever name they are called, have no authority to add to, alter,
or abridge the original articles. It is only to the constituting power that
this right belongs.
From the
want of understanding the difference between a constitution and a government,
Dr. Johnson, and all writers of his description, have always bewildered
themselves. They could not but perceive, that there must necessarily be a
controlling power existing somewhere, and they placed this power in the
discretion of the persons exercising the government, instead of placing it in a
constitution formed by the nation. When it is in a constitution, it has the
nation for its support, and the natural and the political controlling powers
are together. The laws which are enacted by governments, control men only as
individuals, but the nation, through its constitution, controls the whole
government, and has a natural ability to do so. The final controlling power,
therefore, and the original constituting power, are one and the same power.
Dr. Johnson
could not have advanced such a position in any country where there was a
constitution; and he is himself an evidence that no such thing as a
constitution exists in England. But it may be put as a question, not improper
to be investigated, that if a constitution does not exist, how came the idea of
its existence so generally established?
In order to
decide this question, it is necessary to consider a constitution in both its
cases:- First, as creating a government and giving it powers. Secondly, as
regulating and restraining the powers so given.
If we begin
with William of Normandy, we find that the government of England was originally
a tyranny, founded on an invasion and conquest of the country. This being
admitted, it will then appear, that the exertion of the nation, at different
periods, to abate that tyranny, and render it less intolerable, has been
credited for a constitution.
Magna
Charta, as it was called (it is now like an almanack of the same date), was no
more than compelling the government to renounce a part of its assumptions. It
did not create and give powers to government in a manner a constitution does;
but was, as far as it went, of the nature of a re-conquest, and not a
constitution; for could the nation have totally expelled the usurpation, as
France has done its despotism, it would then have had a constitution to form.
The history
of the Edwards and the Henries, and up to the commencement of the Stuarts,
exhibits as many instances of tyranny as could be acted within the limits to
which the nation had restricted it. The Stuarts endeavoured to pass those
limits, and their fate is well known. In all those instances we see nothing of
a constitution, but only of restrictions on assumed power.
After this,
another William, descended from the same stock, and claiming from the same
origin, gained possession; and of the two evils, James and William, the nation
preferred what it thought the least; since, from circumstances, it must take
one. The act, called the Bill of Rights, comes here into view. What is it, but
a bargain, which the parts of the government made with each other to divide
powers, profits, and privileges? You shall have so much, and I will have the
rest; and with respect to the nation, it said, for your share, YOU shall have
the right of petitioning. This being the case, the bill of rights is more
properly a bill of wrongs, and of insult. As to what is called the convention
parliament, it was a thing that made itself, and then made the authority by
which it acted. A few persons got together, and called themselves by that name.
Several of them had never been elected, and none of them for the purpose.
From the
time of William a species of government arose, issuing out of this coalition
bill of rights; and more so, since the corruption introduced at the Hanover
succession by the agency of Walpole; that can be described by no other name
than a despotic legislation. Though the parts may embarrass each other, the
whole has no bounds; and the only right it acknowledges out of itself, is the
right of petitioning. Where then is the constitution either that gives or
restrains power?
It is not
because a part of the government is elective, that makes it less a despotism,
if the persons so elected possess afterwards, as a parliament, unlimited
powers. Election, in this case, becomes separated from representation, and the
candidates are candidates for despotism.
I cannot
believe that any nation, reasoning on its own rights, would have thought of
calling these things a constitution, if the cry of constitution had not been
set up by the government. It has got into circulation like the words bore and
quoz [quiz], by being chalked up in the speeches of parliament, as those words
were on window shutters and doorposts; but whatever the constitution may be in
other respects, it has undoubtedly been the most productive machine of taxation
that was ever invented. The taxes in France, under the new constitution, are
not quite thirteen shillings per head,*[18] and the taxes in England, under
what is called its present constitution, are forty-eight shillings and sixpence
per head- men, women, and children- amounting to nearly seventeen millions
sterling, besides the expense of collecting, which is upwards of a million
more.
In a
country like England, where the whole of the civil Government is executed by
the people of every town and county, by means of parish officers, magistrates,
quarterly sessions, juries, and assize; without any trouble to what is called
the government or any other expense to the revenue than the salary of the
judges, it is astonishing how such a mass of taxes can be employed. Not even
the internal defence of the country is paid out of the revenue. On all
occasions, whether real or contrived, recourse is continually had to new loans
and new taxes. No wonder, then, that a machine of government so advantageous to
the advocates of a court, should be so triumphantly extolled! No wonder, that
St. James's or St. Stephen's should echo with the continual cry of
constitution; no wonder, that the French revolution should be reprobated, and
the res-publica treated with reproach! The red book of England, like the red
book of France, will explain the reason.*[19]
I will now,
by way of relaxation, turn a thought or two to Mr. Burke. I ask his pardon for
neglecting him so long.
"America,"
says he (in his speech on the Canada Constitution bill), "never dreamed of
such absurd doctrine as the Rights of Man."
Mr. Burke
is such a bold presumer, and advances his assertions and his premises with such
a deficiency of judgment, that, without troubling ourselves about principles of
philosophy or politics, the mere logical conclusions they produce, are
ridiculous. For instance,
If
governments, as Mr. Burke asserts, are not founded on the Rights of MAN, and
are founded on any rights at all, they consequently must be founded on the
right of something that is not man. What then is that something?
Generally
speaking, we know of no other creatures that inhabit the earth than man and
beast; and in all cases, where only two things offer themselves, and one must
be admitted, a negation proved on any one, amounts to an affirmative on the
other; and therefore, Mr. Burke, by proving against the Rights of Man, proves
in behalf of the beast; and consequently, proves that government is a beast;
and as difficult things sometimes explain each other, we now see the origin of
keeping wild beasts in the Tower; for they certainly can be of no other use
than to show the origin of the government. They are in the place of a
constitution. O John Bull, what honours thou hast lost by not being a wild
beast. Thou mightest, on Mr. Burke's system, have been in the Tower for life.
If Mr.
Burke's arguments have not weight enough to keep one serious, the fault is less
mine than his; and as I am willing to make an apology to the reader for the
liberty I have taken, I hope Mr. Burke will also make his for giving the cause.
Having thus
paid Mr. Burke the compliment of remembering him, I return to the subject.
From the want
of a constitution in England to restrain and regulate the wild impulse of
power, many of the laws are irrational and tyrannical, and the administration
of them vague and problematical.
The
attention of the government of England (for I rather choose to call it by this
name than the English government) appears, since its political connection with
Germany, to have been so completely engrossed and absorbed by foreign affairs,
and the means of raising taxes, that it seems to exist for no other purposes. Domestic
concerns are neglected; and with respect to regular law, there is scarcely such
a thing.
Almost
every case must now be determined by some precedent, be that precedent good or
bad, or whether it properly applies or not; and the practice is become so
general as to suggest a suspicion, that it proceeds from a deeper policy than
at first sight appears.
Since the
revolution of America, and more so since that of France, this preaching up the
doctrines of precedents, drawn from times and circumstances antecedent to those
events, has been the studied practice of the English government. The generality
of those precedents are founded on principles and opinions, the reverse of what
they ought; and the greater distance of time they are drawn from, the more they
are to be suspected. But by associating those precedents with a superstitious
reverence for ancient things, as monks show relics and call them holy, the
generality of mankind are deceived into the design. Governments now act as if
they were afraid to awaken a single reflection in man. They are softly leading
him to the sepulchre of precedents, to deaden his faculties and call attention
from the scene of revolutions. They feel that he is arriving at knowledge
faster than they wish, and their policy of precedents is the barometer of their
fears. This political popery, like the ecclesiastical popery of old, has had
its day, and is hastening to its exit. The ragged relic and the antiquated
precedent, the monk and the monarch, will moulder together.
Government by
precedent, without any regard to the principle of the precedent, is one of the
vilest systems that can be set up. In numerous instances, the precedent ought
to operate as a warning, and not as an example, and requires to be shunned
instead of imitated; but instead of this, precedents are taken in the lump, and
put at once for constitution and for law.
Either the
doctrine of precedents is policy to keep a man in a state of ignorance, or it
is a practical confession that wisdom degenerates in governments as governments
increase in age, and can only hobble along by the stilts and crutches of
precedents. How is it that the same persons who would proudly be thought wiser
than their predecessors, appear at the same time only as the ghosts of departed
wisdom? How strangely is antiquity treated! To some purposes it is spoken of as
the times of darkness and ignorance, and to answer others, it is put for the
light of the world.
If the
doctrine of precedents is to be followed, the expenses of government need not
continue the same. Why pay men extravagantly, who have but little to do? If
everything that can happen is already in precedent, legislation is at an end,
and precedent, like a dictionary, determines every case. Either, therefore,
government has arrived at its dotage, and requires to be renovated, or all the
occasions for exercising its wisdom have occurred.
We now see
all over Europe, and particularly in England, the curious phenomenon of a
nation looking one way, and the government the other- the one forward and the
other backward. If governments are to go on by precedent, while nations go on
by improvement, they must at last come to a final separation; and the sooner,
and the more civilly they determine this point, the better.*[20]
Having thus
spoken of constitutions generally, as things distinct from actual governments,
let us proceed to consider the parts of which a constitution is composed.
Opinions
differ more on this subject than with respect to the whole. That a nation ought
to have a constitution, as a rule for the conduct of its government, is a
simple question in which all men, not directly courtiers, will agree. It is
only on the component parts that questions and opinions multiply.
But this
difficulty, like every other, will diminish when put into a train of being
rightly understood.
The first
thing is, that a nation has a right to establish a constitution.
Whether it
exercises this right in the most judicious manner at first is quite another
case. It exercises it agreeably to the judgment it possesses; and by continuing
to do so, all errors will at last be exploded.
When this
right is established in a nation, there is no fear that it will be employed to
its own injury. A nation can have no interest in being wrong.
Though all
the constitutions of America are on one general principle, yet no two of them
are exactly alike in their component parts, or in the distribution of the
powers which they give to the actual governments. Some are more, and others
less complex.
In forming
a constitution, it is first necessary to consider what are the ends for which
government is necessary? Secondly, what are the best means, and the least
expensive, for accomplishing those ends?
Government
is nothing more than a national association; and the object of this association
is the good of all, as well individually as collectively. Every man wishes to
pursue his occupation, and to enjoy the fruits of his labours and the produce
of his property in peace and safety, and with the least possible expense. When
these things are accomplished, all the objects for which government ought to be
established are answered.
It has been
customary to consider government under three distinct general heads. The
legislative, the executive, and the judicial.
But if we
permit our judgment to act unincumbered by the habit of multiplied terms, we
can perceive no more than two divisions of power, of which civil government is
composed, namely, that of legislating or enacting laws, and that of executing
or administering them. Everything, therefore, appertaining to civil government,
classes itself under one or other of these two divisions.
So far as
regards the execution of the laws, that which is called the judicial power, is
strictly and properly the executive power of every country. It is that power to
which every individual has appeal, and which causes the laws to be executed;
neither have we any other clear idea with respect to the official execution of
the laws. In England, and also in America and France, this power begins with
the magistrate, and proceeds up through all the courts of judicature.
I leave to
courtiers to explain what is meant by calling monarchy the executive power. It
is merely a name in which acts of government are done; and any other, or none
at all, would answer the same purpose. Laws have neither more nor less
authority on this account. It must be from the justness of their principles,
and the interest which a nation feels therein, that they derive support; if
they require any other than this, it is a sign that something in the system of
government is imperfect. Laws difficult to be executed cannot be generally
good.
With
respect to the organization of the legislative power, different modes have been
adopted in different countries. In America it is generally composed of two
houses. In France it consists but of one, but in both countries, it is wholly
by representation.
The case
is, that mankind (from the long tyranny of assumed power) have had so few
opportunities of making the necessary trials on modes and principles of
government, in order to discover the best, that government is but now beginning
to be known, and experience is yet wanting to determine many particulars.
The
objections against two houses are, first, that there is an inconsistency in any
part of a whole legislature, coming to a final determination by vote on any
matter, whilst that matter, with respect to that whole, is yet only in a train
of deliberation, and consequently open to new illustrations.
Secondly,
That by taking the vote on each, as a separate body, it always admits of the
possibility, and is often the case in practice, that the minority governs the
majority, and that, in some instances, to a degree of great inconsistency.
Thirdly,
That two houses arbitrarily checking or controlling each other is inconsistent;
because it cannot be proved on the principles of just representation, that
either should be wiser or better than the other. They may check in the wrong as
well as in the right- therefore to give the power where we cannot give the wisdom
to use it, nor be assured of its being rightly used, renders the hazard at
least equal to the precaution.*[21]
The
objection against a single house is, that it is always in a condition of
committing itself too soon.- But it should at the same time be remembered, that
when there is a constitution which defines the power, and establishes the
principles within which a legislature shall act, there is already a more
effectual check provided, and more powerfully operating, than any other check
can be. For example,
Were a Bill
to be brought into any of the American legislatures similar to that which was
passed into an act by the English parliament, at the commencement of George the
First, to extend the duration of the assemblies to a longer period than they
now sit, the check is in the constitution, which in effect says, Thus far shalt
thou go and no further.
But in
order to remove the objection against a single house (that of acting with too quick
an impulse), and at the same time to avoid the inconsistencies, in some cases
absurdities, arising from two houses, the following method has been proposed as
an improvement upon both.
First, To
have but one representation.
Secondly,
To divide that representation, by lot, into two or three parts.
Thirdly,
That every proposed bill shall be first debated in those parts by succession,
that they may become the hearers of each other, but without taking any vote.
After which the whole representation to assemble for a general debate and
determination by vote.
To this
proposed improvement has been added another, for the purpose of keeping the
representation in the state of constant renovation; which is, that one-third of
the representation of each county, shall go out at the expiration of one year,
and the number be replaced by new elections. Another third at the expiration of
the second year replaced in like manner, and every third year to be a general
election.*[22]
But in
whatever manner the separate parts of a constitution may be arranged, there is
one general principle that distinguishes freedom from slavery, which is, that
all hereditary government over a people is to them a species of slavery, and
representative government is freedom.
Considering
government in the only light in which it should be considered, that of a
NATIONAL ASSOCIATION, it ought to be so constructed as not to be disordered by
any accident happening among the parts; and, therefore, no extraordinary power,
capable of producing such an effect, should be lodged in the hands of any
individual. The death, sickness, absence or defection, of any one individual in
a government, ought to be a matter of no more consequence, with respect to the
nation, than if the same circumstance had taken place in a member of the
English Parliament, or the French National Assembly.
Scarcely
anything presents a more degrading character of national greatness, than its
being thrown into confusion, by anything happening to or acted by any
individual; and the ridiculousness of the scene is often increased by the
natural insignificance of the person by whom it is occasioned. Were a
government so constructed, that it could not go on unless a goose or a gander
were present in the senate, the difficulties would be just as great and as
real, on the flight or sickness of the goose, or the gander, as if it were
called a King. We laugh at individuals for the silly difficulties they make to
themselves, without perceiving that the greatest of all ridiculous things are
acted in governments.*[23]
All the
constitutions of America are on a plan that excludes the childish
embarrassments which occur in monarchical countries. No suspension of
government can there take place for a moment, from any circumstances whatever.
The system of representation provides for everything, and is the only system in
which nations and governments can always appear in their proper character.
As
extraordinary power ought not to be lodged in the hands of any individual, so
ought there to be no appropriations of public money to any person, beyond what
his services in a state may be worth. It signifies not whether a man be called
a president, a king, an emperor, a senator, or by any other name which
propriety or folly may devise or arrogance assume; it is only a certain service
he can perform in the state; and the service of any such individual in the
routine of office, whether such office be called monarchical, presidential,
senatorial, or by any other name or title, can never exceed the value of ten
thousand pounds a year. All the great services that are done in the world are
performed by volunteer characters, who accept nothing for them; but the routine
of office is always regulated to such a general standard of abilities as to be
within the compass of numbers in every country to perform, and therefore cannot
merit very extraordinary recompense. Government, says Swift, is a Plain thing,
and fitted to the capacity of many heads.
It is
inhuman to talk of a million sterling a year, paid out of the public taxes of
any country, for the support of any individual, whilst thousands who are forced
to contribute thereto, are pining with want, and struggling with misery.
Government does not consist in a contrast between prisons and palaces, between
poverty and pomp; it is not instituted to rob the needy of his mite, and
increase the wretchedness of the wretched.- But on this part of the subject I
shall speak hereafter, and confine myself at present to political observations.
When
extraordinary power and extraordinary pay are allotted to any individual in a
government, he becomes the center, round which every kind of corruption
generates and forms. Give to any man a million a year, and add thereto the
power of creating and disposing of places, at the expense of a country, and the
liberties of that country are no longer secure. What is called the splendour of
a throne is no other than the corruption of the state. It is made up of a band
of parasites, living in luxurious indolence, out of the public taxes.
When once
such a vicious system is established it becomes the guard and protection of all
inferior abuses. The man who is in the receipt of a million a year is the last
person to promote a spirit of reform, lest, in the event, it should reach to
himself. It is always his interest to defend inferior abuses, as so many
outworks to protect the citadel; and on this species of political
fortification, all the parts have such a common dependence that it is never to
be expected they will attack each other.*[24]
Monarchy
would not have continued so many ages in the world, had it not been for the
abuses it protects. It is the master-fraud, which shelters all others. By
admitting a participation of the spoil, it makes itself friends; and when it
ceases to do this it will cease to be the idol of courtiers.
As the
principle on which constitutions are now formed rejects all hereditary
pretensions to government, it also rejects all that catalogue of assumptions
known by the name of prerogatives.
If there is
any government where prerogatives might with apparent safety be entrusted to
any individual, it is in the federal government of America. The president of
the United States of America is elected only for four years. He is not only
responsible in the general sense of the word, but a particular mode is laid
down in the constitution for trying him. He cannot be elected under thirty-five
years of age; and he must be a native of the country.
In a
comparison of these cases with the Government of England, the difference when
applied to the latter amounts to an absurdity. In England the person who
exercises prerogative is often a foreigner; always half a foreigner, and always
married to a foreigner. He is never in full natural or political connection
with the country, is not responsible for anything, and becomes of age at
eighteen years; yet such a person is permitted to form foreign alliances,
without even the knowledge of the nation, and to make war and peace without its
consent.
But this is
not all. Though such a person cannot dispose of the government in the manner of
a testator, he dictates the marriage connections, which, in effect, accomplish
a great part of the same end. He cannot directly bequeath half the government
to Prussia, but he can form a marriage partnership that will produce almost the
same thing. Under such circumstances, it is happy for England that she is not
situated on the Continent, or she might, like Holland, fall under the
dictatorship of Prussia. Holland, by marriage, is as effectually governed by
Prussia, as if the old tyranny of bequeathing the government had been the
means.
The
presidency in America (or, as it is sometimes called, the executive) is the
only office from which a foreigner is excluded, and in England it is the only
one to which he is admitted. A foreigner cannot be a member of Parliament, but
he may be what is called a king. If there is any reason for excluding
foreigners, it ought to be from those offices where mischief can most be acted,
and where, by uniting every bias of interest and attachment, the trust is best
secured. But as nations proceed in the great business of forming constitutions,
they will examine with more precision into the nature and business of that
department which is called the executive. What the legislative and judicial
departments are every one can see; but with respect to what, in Europe, is
called the executive, as distinct from those two, it is either a political
superfluity or a chaos of unknown things.
Some kind
of official department, to which reports shall be made from the different parts
of a nation, or from abroad, to be laid before the national representatives, is
all that is necessary; but there is no consistency in calling this the
executive; neither can it be considered in any other light than as inferior to
the legislative. The sovereign authority in any country is the power of making
laws, and everything else is an official department.
Next to the
arrangement of the principles and the organization of the several parts of a
constitution, is the provision to be made for the support of the persons to
whom the nation shall confide the administration of the constitutional powers.
A nation
can have no right to the time and services of any person at his own expense,
whom it may choose to employ or entrust in any department whatever; neither can
any reason be given for making provision for the support of any one part of a
government and not for the other.
But
admitting that the honour of being entrusted with any part of a government is
to be considered a sufficient reward, it ought to be so to every person alike.
If the members of the legislature of any country are to serve at their own
expense that which is called the executive, whether monarchical or by any other
name, ought to serve in like manner. It is inconsistent to pay the one, and
accept the service of the other gratis.
In America,
every department in the government is decently provided for; but no one is
extravagantly paid. Every member of Congress, and of the Assemblies, is allowed
a sufficiency for his expenses. Whereas in England, a most prodigal provision
is made for the support of one part of the Government, and none for the other,
the consequence of which is that the one is furnished with the means of
corruption and the other is put into the condition of being corrupted. Less
than a fourth part of such expense, applied as it is in America, would remedy a
great part of the corruption.
Another
reform in the American constitution is the exploding all oaths of personality.
The oath of allegiance in America is to the nation only. The putting any
individual as a figure for a nation is improper. The happiness of a nation is
the superior object, and therefore the intention of an oath of allegiance ought
not to be obscured by being figuratively taken, to, or in the name of, any
person. The oath, called the civic oath, in France, viz., "the nation, the
law, and the king," is improper. If taken at all, it ought to be as in
America, to the nation only. The law may or may not be good; but, in this
place, it can have no other meaning, than as being conducive to the happiness
of a nation, and therefore is included in it. The remainder of the oath is
improper, on the ground, that all personal oaths ought to be abolished. They
are the remains of tyranny on one part and slavery on the other; and the name
of the CREATOR ought not to be introduced to witness the degradation of his
creation; or if taken, as is already mentioned, as figurative of the nation, it
is in this place redundant. But whatever apology may be made for oaths at the
first establishment of a government, they ought not to be permitted afterwards.
If a government requires the support of oaths, it is a sign that it is not
worth supporting, and ought not to be supported. Make government what it ought
to be, and it will support itself.
To conclude
this part of the subject:- One of the greatest improvements that have been made
for the perpetual security and progress of constitutional liberty, is the
provision which the new constitutions make for occasionally revising, altering,
and amending them.
The
principle upon which Mr. Burke formed his political creed, that of
"binding and controlling posterity to the end of time, and of renouncing
and abdicating the rights of all posterity, for ever," is now become too
detestable to be made a subject of debate; and therefore, I pass it over with
no other notice than exposing it.
Government
is but now beginning to be known. Hitherto it has been the mere exercise of
power, which forbade all effectual enquiry into rights, and grounded itself
wholly on possession. While the enemy of liberty was its judge, the progress of
its principles must have been small indeed.
The
constitutions of America, and also that of France, have either affixed a period
for their revision, or laid down the mode by which improvement shall be made.
It is perhaps impossible to establish anything that combines principles with
opinions and practice, which the progress of circumstances, through a length of
years, will not in some measure derange, or render inconsistent; and,
therefore, to prevent inconveniences accumulating, till they discourage
reformations or provoke revolutions, it is best to provide the means of
regulating them as they occur. The Rights of Man are the rights of all
generations of men, and cannot be monopolised by any. That which is worth
following, will be followed for the sake of its worth, and it is in this that
its security lies, and not in any conditions with which it may be encumbered.
When a man leaves property to his heirs, he does not connect it with an
obligation that they shall accept it. Why, then, should we do otherwise with
respect to constitutions? The best constitution that could now be devised,
consistent with the condition of the present moment, may be far short of that
excellence which a few years may afford. There is a morning of reason rising
upon man on the subject of government, that has not appeared before. As the
barbarism of the present old governments expires, the moral conditions of
nations with respect to each other will be changed. Man will not be brought up
with the savage idea of considering his species as his enemy, because the
accident of birth gave the individuals existence in countries distinguished by
different names; and as constitutions have always some relation to external as
well as to domestic circumstances, the means of benefitting by every change,
foreign or domestic, should be a part of every constitution. We already see an
alteration in the national disposition of England and France towards each
other, which, when we look back to only a few years, is itself a Revolution.
Who could have foreseen, or who could have believed, that a French National
Assembly would ever have been a popular toast in England, or that a friendly
alliance of the two nations should become the wish of either? It shows that
man, were he not corrupted by governments, is naturally the friend of man, and
that human nature is not of itself vicious. That spirit of jealousy and
ferocity, which the governments of the two countries inspired, and which they
rendered subservient to the purpose of taxation, is now yielding to the
dictates of reason, interest, and humanity. The trade of courts is beginning to
be understood, and the affectation of mystery, with all the artificial sorcery
by which they imposed upon mankind, is on the decline. It has received its
death-wound; and though it may linger, it will expire. Government ought to be
as much open to improvement as anything which appertains to man, instead of
which it has been monopolised from age to age, by the most ignorant and vicious
of the human race. Need we any other proof of their wretched management, than
the excess of debts and taxes with which every nation groans, and the quarrels
into which they have precipitated the world? Just emerging from such a
barbarous condition, it is too soon to determine to what extent of improvement
government may yet be carried. For what we can foresee, all Europe may form but
one great Republic, and man be free of the whole.
CHAPTER V
WAYS AND MEANS
OF IMPROVING THE CONDITION OF EUROPE INTERSPERSED WITH MISCELLANEOUS
OBSERVATIONS
In
contemplating a subject that embraces with equatorial magnitude the whole
region of humanity it is impossible to confine the pursuit in one single
direction. It takes ground on every character and condition that appertains to
man, and blends the individual, the nation, and the world. From a small spark,
kindled in America, a flame has arisen not to be extinguished. Without
consuming, like the Ultima Ratio Regum, it winds its progress from nation to
nation, and conquers by a silent operation. Man finds himself changed, he
scarcely perceives how. He acquires a knowledge of his rights by attending
justly to his interest, and discovers in the event that the strength and powers
of despotism consist wholly in the fear of resisting it, and that, in order
"to be free, it is sufficient that he wills it."
Having in
all the preceding parts of this work endeavoured to establish a system of
principles as a basis on which governments ought to be erected, I shall proceed
in this, to the ways and means of rendering them into practice. But in order to
introduce this part of the subject with more propriety, and stronger effect,
some preliminary observations, deducible from, or connected with, those
principles, are necessary.
Whatever
the form or constitution of government may be, it ought to have no other object
than the general happiness. When, instead of this, it operates to create and
increase wretchedness in any of the parts of society, it is on a wrong system,
and reformation is necessary. Customary language has classed the condition of
man under the two descriptions of civilised and uncivilised life. To the one it
has ascribed felicity and affluence; to the other hardship and want. But,
however our imagination may be impressed by painting and comparison, it is
nevertheless true, that a great portion of mankind, in what are called
civilised countries, are in a state of poverty and wretchedness, far below the
condition of an Indian. I speak not of one country, but of all. It is so in
England, it is so all over Europe. Let us enquire into the cause.
It lies not
in any natural defect in the principles of civilisation, but in preventing
those principles having a universal operation; the consequence of which is, a
perpetual system of war and expense, that drains the country, and defeats the
general felicity of which civilisation is capable. All the European governments
(France now excepted) are constructed not on the principle of universal
civilisation, but on the reverse of it. So far as those governments relate to
each other, they are in the same condition as we conceive of savage uncivilised
life; they put themselves beyond the law as well of GOD as of man, and are,
with respect to principle and reciprocal conduct, like so many individuals in a
state of nature. The inhabitants of every country, under the civilisation of
laws, easily civilise together, but governments being yet in an uncivilised
state, and almost continually at war, they pervert the abundance which
civilised life produces to carry on the uncivilised part to a greater extent.
By thus engrafting the barbarism of government upon the internal civilisation
of a country, it draws from the latter, and more especially from the poor, a
great portion of those earnings, which should be applied to their own
subsistence and comfort. Apart from all reflections of morality and philosophy,
it is a melancholy fact that more than one-fourth of the labour of mankind is
annually consumed by this barbarous system. What has served to continue this
evil, is the pecuniary advantage which all the governments of Europe have found
in keeping up this state of uncivilisation. It affords to them pretences for
power, and revenue, for which there would be neither occasion nor apology, if
the circle of civilisation were rendered complete. Civil government alone, or
the government of laws, is not productive of pretences for many taxes; it
operates at home, directly under the eye of the country, and precludes the
possibility of much imposition. But when the scene is laid in the uncivilised
contention of governments, the field of pretences is enlarged, and the country,
being no longer a judge, is open to every imposition, which governments please
to act. Not a thirtieth, scarcely a fortieth, part of the taxes which are
raised in England are either occasioned by, or applied to, the purpose of civil
government. It is not difficult to see, that the whole which the actual
government does in this respect, is to enact laws, and that the country
administers and executes them, at its own expense, by means of magistrates,
juries, sessions, and assize, over and above the taxes which it pays. In this
view of the case, we have two distinct characters of government; the one the
civil government, or the government of laws, which operates at home, the other
the court or cabinet government, which operates abroad, on the rude plan of
uncivilised life; the one attended with little charge, the other with boundless
extravagance; and so distinct are the two, that if the latter were to sink, as
it were, by a sudden opening of the earth, and totally disappear, the former
would not be deranged. It would still proceed, because it is the common
interest of the nation that it should, and all the means are in practice.
Revolutions, then, have for their object a change in the moral condition of
governments, and with this change the burthen of public taxes will lessen, and
civilisation will be left to the enjoyment of that abundance, of which it is
now deprived. In contemplating the whole of this subject, I extend my views
into the department of commerce. In all my publications, where the matter would
admit, I have been an advocate for commerce, because I am a friend to its
effects. It is a pacific system, operating to cordialise mankind, by rendering
nations, as well as individuals, useful to each other. As to the mere
theoretical reformation, I have never preached it up. The most effectual
process is that of improving the condition of man by means of his interest; and
it is on this ground that I take my stand. If commerce were permitted to act to
the universal extent it is capable, it would extirpate the system of war, and
produce a revolution in the uncivilised state of governments. The invention of
commerce has arisen since those governments began, and is the greatest approach
towards universal civilisation that has yet been made by any means not
immediately flowing from moral principles. Whatever has a tendency to promote
the civil intercourse of nations by an exchange of benefits, is a subject as
worthy of philosophy as of politics. Commerce is no other than the traffic of
two individuals, multiplied on a scale of numbers; and by the same rule that
nature intended for the intercourse of two, she intended that of all. For this
purpose she has distributed the materials of manufactures and commerce, in
various and distant parts of a nation and of the world; and as they cannot be
procured by war so cheaply or so commodiously as by commerce, she has rendered
the latter the means of extirpating the former. As the two are nearly the
opposite of each other, consequently, the uncivilised state of the European
governments is injurious to commerce. Every kind of destruction or
embarrassment serves to lessen the quantity, and it matters but little in what
part of the commercial world the reduction begins. Like blood, it cannot be
taken from any of the parts, without being taken from the whole mass in
circulation, and all partake of the loss. When the ability in any nation to buy
is destroyed, it equally involves the seller. Could the government of England
destroy the commerce of all other nations, she would most effectually ruin her
own. It is possible that a nation may be the carrier for the world, but she cannot
be the merchant. She cannot be the seller and buyer of her own merchandise. The
ability to buy must reside out of herself; and, therefore, the prosperity of
any commercial nation is regulated by the prosperity of the rest. If they are
poor she cannot be rich, and her condition, be what it may, is an index of the
height of the commercial tide in other nations. That the principles of
commerce, and its universal operation may be understood, without understanding
the practice, is a position that reason will not deny; and it is on this ground
only that I argue the subject. It is one thing in the counting-house, in the
world it is another. With respect to its operation it must necessarily be
contemplated as a reciprocal thing; that only one-half its powers resides
within the nation, and that the whole is as effectually destroyed by the
destroying the half that resides without, as if the destruction had been
committed on that which is within; for neither can act without the other. When
in the last, as well as in former wars, the commerce of England sunk, it was
because the quantity was lessened everywhere; and it now rises, because
commerce is in a rising state in every nation. If England, at this day, imports
and exports more than at any former period, the nations with which she trades
must necessarily do the same; her imports are their exports, and vice versa.
There can be no such thing as a nation flourishing alone in commerce: she can
only participate; and the destruction of it in any part must necessarily affect
all. When, therefore, governments are at war, the attack is made upon a common
stock of commerce, and the consequence is the same as if each had attacked his
own. The present increase of commerce is not to be attributed to ministers, or
to any political contrivances, but to its own natural operation in consequence
of peace. The regular markets had been destroyed, the channels of trade broken
up, the high road of the seas infested with robbers of every nation, and the
attention of the world called to other objects. Those interruptions have
ceased, and peace has restored the deranged condition of things to their proper
order.*[25] It is worth remarking that every nation reckons the balance of
trade in its own favour; and therefore something must be irregular in the
common ideas upon this subject. The fact, however, is true, according to what
is called a balance; and it is from this cause that commerce is universally
supported. Every nation feels the advantage, or it would abandon the practice:
but the deception lies in the mode of making up the accounts, and in
attributing what are called profits to a wrong cause. Mr. Pitt has sometimes
amused himself, by showing what he called a balance of trade from the
custom-house books. This mode of calculating not only affords no rule that is
true, but one that is false. In the first place, Every cargo that departs from
the custom-house appears on the books as an export; and, according to the
custom-house balance, the losses at sea, and by foreign failures, are all reckoned
on the side of profit because they appear as exports.
Secondly,
Because the importation by the smuggling trade does not appear on the
custom-house books, to arrange against the exports.
No balance,
therefore, as applying to superior advantages, can be drawn from these
documents; and if we examine the natural operation of commerce, the idea is
fallacious; and if true, would soon be injurious. The great support of commerce
consists in the balance being a level of benefits among all nations.
Two merchants
of different nations trading together, will both become rich, and each makes
the balance in his own favour; consequently, they do not get rich of each
other; and it is the same with respect to the nations in which they reside. The
case must be, that each nation must get rich out of its own means, and
increases that riches by something which it procures from another in exchange.
If a
merchant in England sends an article of English manufacture abroad which costs
him a shilling at home, and imports something which sells for two, he makes a
balance of one shilling in his favour; but this is not gained out of the
foreign nation or the foreign merchant, for he also does the same by the
articles he receives, and neither has the advantage upon the other. The original
value of the two articles in their proper countries was but two shillings; but
by changing their places, they acquire a new idea of value, equal to double
what they had first, and that increased value is equally divided.
There is no
otherwise a balance on foreign than on domestic commerce. The merchants of
London and Newcastle trade on the same principles, as if they resided in
different nations, and make their balances in the same manner: yet London does
not get rich out of Newcastle, any more than Newcastle out of London: but
coals, the merchandize of Newcastle, have an additional value at London, and
London merchandize has the same at Newcastle.
Though the
principle of all commerce is the same, the domestic, in a national view, is the
part the most beneficial; because the whole of the advantages, an both sides,
rests within the nation; whereas, in foreign commerce, it is only a
participation of one-half.
The most
unprofitable of all commerce is that connected with foreign dominion. To a few
individuals it may be beneficial, merely because it is commerce; but to the
nation it is a loss. The expense of maintaining dominion more than absorbs the
profits of any trade. It does not increase the general quantity in the world,
but operates to lessen it; and as a greater mass would be afloat by
relinquishing dominion, the participation without the expense would be more
valuable than a greater quantity with it.
But it is
impossible to engross commerce by dominion; and therefore it is still more
fallacious. It cannot exist in confined channels, and necessarily breaks out by
regular or irregular means, that defeat the attempt: and to succeed would be
still worse. France, since the Revolution, has been more indifferent as to
foreign possessions, and other nations will become the same when they
investigate the subject with respect to commerce.
To the
expense of dominion is to be added that of navies, and when the amounts of the
two are subtracted from the profits of commerce, it will appear, that what is
called the balance of trade, even admitting it to exist, is not enjoyed by the
nation, but absorbed by the Government.
The idea of
having navies for the protection of commerce is delusive. It is putting means
of destruction for the means of protection. Commerce needs no other protection
than the reciprocal interest which every nation feels in supporting it- it is
common stock- it exists by a balance of advantages to all; and the only
interruption it meets, is from the present uncivilised state of governments, and
which it is its common interest to reform.*[26]
Quitting
this subject, I now proceed to other matters.- As it is necessary to include
England in the prospect of a general reformation, it is proper to inquire into
the defects of its government. It is only by each nation reforming its own,
that the whole can be improved, and the full benefit of reformation enjoyed.
Only partial advantages can flow from partial reforms.
France and
England are the only two countries in Europe where a reformation in government
could have successfully begun. The one secure by the ocean, and the other by
the immensity of its internal strength, could defy the malignancy of foreign
despotism. But it is with revolutions as with commerce, the advantages increase
by their becoming general, and double to either what each would receive alone.
As a new
system is now opening to the view of the world, the European courts are
plotting to counteract it. Alliances, contrary to all former systems, are
agitating, and a common interest of courts is forming against the common
interest of man. This combination draws a line that runs throughout Europe, and
presents a cause so entirely new as to exclude all calculations from former
circumstances. While despotism warred with despotism, man had no interest in
the contest; but in a cause that unites the soldier with the citizen, and
nation with nation, the despotism of courts, though it feels the danger and
meditates revenge, is afraid to strike.
No question
has arisen within the records of history that pressed with the importance of
the present. It is not whether this or that party shall be in or not, or Whig
or Tory, high or low shall prevail; but whether man shall inherit his rights,
and universal civilisation take place? Whether the fruits of his labours shall
be enjoyed by himself or consumed by the profligacy of governments? Whether
robbery shall be banished from courts, and wretchedness from countries?
When, in
countries that are called civilised, we see age going to the workhouse and
youth to the gallows, something must be wrong in the system of government. It
would seem, by the exterior appearance of such countries, that all was
happiness; but there lies hidden from the eye of common observation, a mass of
wretchedness, that has scarcely any other chance, than to expire in poverty or
infamy. Its entrance into life is marked with the presage of its fate; and
until this is remedied, it is in vain to punish.
Civil
government does not exist in executions; but in making such provision for the
instruction of youth and the support of age, as to exclude, as much as
possible, profligacy from the one and despair from the other. Instead of this,
the resources of a country are lavished upon kings, upon courts, upon
hirelings, impostors and prostitutes; and even the poor themselves, with all
their wants upon them, are compelled to support the fraud that oppresses them.
Why is it
that scarcely any are executed but the poor? The fact is a proof, among other
things, of a wretchedness in their condition. Bred up without morals, and cast
upon the world without a prospect, they are the exposed sacrifice of vice and
legal barbarity. The millions that are superfluously wasted upon governments
are more than sufficient to reform those evils, and to benefit the condition of
every man in a nation, not included within the purlieus of a court. This I hope
to make appear in the progress of this work.
It is the
nature of compassion to associate with misfortune. In taking up this subject I
seek no recompense- I fear no consequence. Fortified with that proud integrity,
that disdains to triumph or to yield, I will advocate the Rights of Man.
It is to my
advantage that I have served an apprenticeship to life. I know the value of
moral instruction, and I have seen the danger of the contrary.
At an early
period- little more than sixteen years of age, raw and adventurous, and heated
with the false heroism of a master*[27] who had served in a man-of-war- I began
the carver of my own fortune, and entered on board the Terrible Privateer,
Captain Death. From this adventure I was happily prevented by the affectionate
and moral remonstrance of a good father, who, from his own habits of life,
being of the Quaker profession, must begin to look upon me as lost. But the
impression, much as it effected at the time, began to wear away, and I entered
afterwards in the King of Prussia Privateer, Captain Mendez, and went with her
to sea. Yet, from such a beginning, and with all the inconvenience of early
life against me, I am proud to say, that with a perseverance undismayed by
difficulties, a disinterestedness that compelled respect, I have not only
contributed to raise a new empire in the world, founded on a new system of
government, but I have arrived at an eminence in political literature, the most
difficult of all lines to succeed and excel in, which aristocracy with all its
aids has not been able to reach or to rival.*[28]
Knowing my
own heart and feeling myself as I now do, superior to all the skirmish of
party, the inveteracy of interested or mistaken opponents, I answer not to
falsehood or abuse, but proceed to the defects of the English Government.
I begin
with charters and corporations.
It is a
perversion of terms to say that a charter gives rights. It operates by a
contrary effect- that of taking rights away. Rights are inherently in all the
inhabitants; but charters, by annulling those rights, in the majority, leave
the right, by exclusion, in the hands of a few. If charters were constructed so
as to express in direct terms, "that every inhabitant, who is not a member
of a corporation, shall not exercise the right of voting," such charters
would, in the face, be charters not of rights, but of exclusion. The effect is
the same under the form they now stand; and the only persons on whom they
operate are the persons whom they exclude. Those whose rights are guaranteed,
by not being taken away, exercise no other rights than as members of the
community they are entitled to without a charter; and, therefore, all charters
have no other than an indirect negative operation. They do not give rights to
A, but they make a difference in favour of A by taking away the right of B, and
consequently are instruments of injustice.
But charters
and corporations have a more extensive evil effect than what relates merely to
elections. They are sources of endless contentions in the places where they
exist, and they lessen the common rights of national society. A native of
England, under the operation of these charters and corporations, cannot be said
to be an Englishman in the full sense of the word. He is not free of the
nation, in the same manner that a Frenchman is free of France, and an American
of America. His rights are circumscribed to the town, and, in some cases, to
the parish of his birth; and all other parts, though in his native land, are to
him as a foreign country. To acquire a residence in these, he must undergo a
local naturalisation by purchase, or he is forbidden or expelled the place.
This species of feudality is kept up to aggrandise the corporations at the ruin
of towns; and the effect is visible.
The
generality of corporation towns are in a state of solitary decay, and prevented
from further ruin only by some circumstance in their situation, such as a
navigable river, or a plentiful surrounding country. As population is one of
the chief sources of wealth (for without it land itself has no value),
everything which operates to prevent it must lessen the value of property; and
as corporations have not only this tendency, but directly this effect, they
cannot but be injurious. If any policy were to be followed, instead of that of
general freedom, to every person to settle where he chose (as in France or
America) it would be more consistent to give encouragement to new comers than
to preclude their admission by exacting premiums from them.*[29]
The persons
most immediately interested in the abolition of corporations are the
inhabitants of the towns where corporations are established. The instances of
Manchester, Birmingham, and Sheffield show, by contrast, the injuries which
those Gothic institutions are to property and commerce. A few examples may be
found, such as that of London, whose natural and commercial advantage, owing to
its situation on the Thames, is capable of bearing up against the political
evils of a corporation; but in almost all other cases the fatality is too
visible to be doubted or denied.
Though the
whole nation is not so directly affected by the depression of property in
corporation towns as the inhabitants themselves, it partakes of the
consequence. By lessening the value of property, the quantity of national
commerce is curtailed. Every man is a customer in proportion to his ability;
and as all parts of a nation trade with each other, whatever affects any of the
parts must necessarily communicate to the whole.
As one of
the Houses of the English Parliament is, in a great measure, made up of
elections from these corporations; and as it is unnatural that a pure stream
should flow from a foul fountain, its vices are but a continuation of the vices
of its origin. A man of moral honour and good political principles cannot
submit to the mean drudgery and disgraceful arts, by which such elections are
carried. To be a successful candidate, he must be destitute of the qualities
that constitute a just legislator; and being thus disciplined to corruption by
the mode of entering into Parliament, it is not to be expected that the
representative should be better than the man.
Mr. Burke,
in speaking of the English representation, has advanced as bold a challenge as
ever was given in the days of chivalry. "Our representation," says
he, "has been found perfectly adequate to all the purposes for which a
representation of the people can be desired or devised." "I
defy," continues he, "the enemies of our constitution to show the
contrary."- This declaration from a man who has been in constant
opposition to all the measures of parliament the whole of his political life, a
year or two excepted, is most extraordinary; and, comparing him with himself,
admits of no other alternative, than that he acted against his judgment as a
member, or has declared contrary to it as an author.
But it is
not in the representation only that the defects lie, and therefore I proceed in
the next place to the aristocracy.
What is
called the House of Peers, is constituted on a ground very similar to that,
against which there is no law in other cases. It amounts to a combination of
persons in one common interest. No better reason can be given, why a house of
legislation should be composed entirely of men whose occupation consists in
letting landed property, than why it should be composed of those who hire, or
of brewers, or bakers, or any other separate class of men. Mr. Burke calls this
house "the great ground and pillar of security to the landed
interest." Let us examine this idea.
What pillar
of security does the landed interest require more than any other interest in
the state, or what right has it to a distinct and separate representation from
the general interest of a nation? The only use to be made of this power (and
which it always has made), is to ward off taxes from itself, and throw the
burthen upon those articles of consumption by which itself would be least
affected.
That this
has been the consequence (and will always be the consequence) of constructing
governments on combinations, is evident with respect to England, from the
history of its taxes.
Notwithstanding
taxes have increased and multiplied upon every article of common consumption,
the land-tax, which more particularly affects this "pillar," has
diminished. In 1778 the amount of the land-tax was L1,950,000, which is
half-a-million less than it produced almost a hundred years ago,*[30] notwithstanding
the rentals are in many instances doubled since that period.
Before the
coming of the Hanoverians, the taxes were divided in nearly equal proportions
between the land and articles of consumption, the land bearing rather the
largest share: but since that era nearly thirteen millions annually of new
taxes have been thrown upon consumption. The consequence of which has been a
constant increase in the number and wretchedness of the poor, and in the amount
of the poor-rates. Yet here again the burthen does not fall in equal
proportions on the aristocracy with the rest of the community. Their
residences, whether in town or country, are not mixed with the habitations of
the poor. They live apart from distress, and the expense of relieving it. It is
in manufacturing towns and labouring villages that those burthens press the
heaviest; in many of which it is one class of poor supporting another.
Several of
the most heavy and productive taxes are so contrived, as to give an exemption
to this pillar, thus standing in its own defence. The tax upon beer brewed for
sale does not affect the aristocracy, who brew their own beer free from this
duty. It falls only on those who have not conveniency or ability to brew, and
who must purchase it in small quantities. But what will mankind think of the
justice of taxation, when they know that this tax alone, from which the
aristocracy are from circumstances exempt, is nearly equal to the whole of the
land-tax, being in the year 1788, and it is not less now, L1,666,152, and with
its proportion of the taxes on malt and hops, it exceeds it.- That a single
article, thus partially consumed, and that chiefly by the working part, should
be subject to a tax, equal to that on the whole rental of a nation, is,
perhaps, a fact not to be paralleled in the histories of revenues.
This is one
of the circumstances resulting from a house of legislation, composed on the
ground of a combination of common interest; for whatever their separate
politics as to parties may be, in this they are united. Whether a combination
acts to raise the price of any article for sale, or rate of wages; or whether
it acts to throw taxes from itself upon another class of the community, the
principle and the effect are the same; and if the one be illegal, it will be
difficult to show that the other ought to exist.
It is no
use to say that taxes are first proposed in the House of Commons; for as the
other house has always a negative, it can always defend itself; and it would be
ridiculous to suppose that its acquiescence in the measures to be proposed were
not understood before hand. Besides which, it has obtained so much influence by
borough-traffic, and so many of its relations and connections are distributed
on both sides the commons, as to give it, besides an absolute negative in one
house, a preponderancy in the other, in all matters of common concern.
It is
difficult to discover what is meant by the landed interest, if it does not mean
a combination of aristocratical landholders, opposing their own pecuniary
interest to that of the farmer, and every branch of trade, commerce, and
manufacture. In all other respects it is the only interest that needs no
partial protection. It enjoys the general protection of the world. Every
individual, high or low, is interested in the fruits of the earth; men, women,
and children, of all ages and degrees, will turn out to assist the farmer,
rather than a harvest should not be got in; and they will not act thus by any
other property. It is the only one for which the common prayer of mankind is
put up, and the only one that can never fail from the want of means. It is the
interest, not of the policy, but of the existence of man, and when it ceases,
he must cease to be.
No other
interest in a nation stands on the same united support. Commerce, manufactures,
arts, sciences, and everything else, compared with this, are supported but in
parts. Their prosperity or their decay has not the same universal influence.
When the valleys laugh and sing, it is not the farmer only, but all creation
that rejoice. It is a prosperity that excludes all envy; and this cannot be
said of anything else.
Why then,
does Mr. Burke talk of his house of peers as the pillar of the landed interest?
Were that pillar to sink into the earth, the same landed property would
continue, and the same ploughing, sowing, and reaping would go on. The
aristocracy are not the farmers who work the land, and raise the produce, but
are the mere consumers of the rent; and when compared with the active world are
the drones, a seraglio of males, who neither collect the honey nor form the
hive, but exist only for lazy enjoyment.
Mr. Burke,
in his first essay, called aristocracy "the Corinthian capital of polished
society." Towards completing the figure, he has now added the pillar; but
still the base is wanting; and whenever a nation choose to act a Samson, not
blind, but bold, down will go the temple of Dagon, the Lords and the
Philistines.
If a house
of legislation is to be composed of men of one class, for the purpose of protecting
a distinct interest, all the other interests should have the same. The
inequality, as well as the burthen of taxation, arises from admitting it in one
case, and not in all. Had there been a house of farmers, there had been no game
laws; or a house of merchants and manufacturers, the taxes had neither been so
unequal nor so excessive. It is from the power of taxation being in the hands
of those who can throw so great a part of it from their own shoulders, that it
has raged without a check.
Men of small
or moderate estates are more injured by the taxes being thrown on articles of
consumption, than they are eased by warding it from landed property, for the
following reasons:
First, They
consume more of the productive taxable articles, in proportion to their
property, than those of large estates.
Secondly,
Their residence is chiefly in towns, and their property in houses; and the
increase of the poor-rates, occasioned by taxes on consumption, is in much
greater proportion than the land-tax has been favoured. In Birmingham, the
poor-rates are not less than seven shillings in the pound. From this, as is
already observed, the aristocracy are in a great measure exempt.
These are
but a part of the mischiefs flowing from the wretched scheme of an house of
peers.
As a
combination, it can always throw a considerable portion of taxes from itself;
and as an hereditary house, accountable to nobody, it resembles a rotten
borough, whose consent is to be courted by interest. There are but few of its
members, who are not in some mode or other participators, or disposers of the
public money. One turns a candle-holder, or a lord in waiting; another a lord
of the bed-chamber, a groom of the stole, or any insignificant nominal office
to which a salary is annexed, paid out of the public taxes, and which avoids
the direct appearance of corruption. Such situations are derogatory to the
character of man; and where they can be submitted to, honour cannot reside.
To all
these are to be added the numerous dependants, the long list of younger
branches and distant relations, who are to be provided for at the public
expense: in short, were an estimation to be made of the charge of aristocracy
to a nation, it will be found nearly equal to that of supporting the poor. The
Duke of Richmond alone (and there are cases similar to his) takes away as much
for himself as would maintain two thousand poor and aged persons. Is it, then,
any wonder, that under such a system of government, taxes and rates have
multiplied to their present extent?
In stating
these matters, I speak an open and disinterested language, dictated by no
passion but that of humanity. To me, who have not only refused offers, because
I thought them improper, but have declined rewards I might with reputation have
accepted, it is no wonder that meanness and imposition appear disgustful.
Independence is my happiness, and I view things as they are, without regard to
place or person; my country is the world, and my religion is to do good.
Mr. Burke,
in speaking of the aristocratical law of primogeniture, says, "it is the
standing law of our landed inheritance; and which, without question, has a
tendency, and I think," continues he, "a happy tendency, to preserve
a character of weight and consequence."
Mr. Burke
may call this law what he pleases, but humanity and impartial reflection will
denounce it as a law of brutal injustice. Were we not accustomed to the daily
practice, and did we only hear of it as the law of some distant part of the
world, we should conclude that the legislators of such countries had not
arrived at a state of civilisation.
As to its
preserving a character of weight and consequence, the case appears to me
directly the reverse. It is an attaint upon character; a sort of privateering on
family property. It may have weight among dependent tenants, but it gives none
on a scale of national, and much less of universal character. Speaking for
myself, my parents were not able to give me a shilling, beyond what they gave
me in education; and to do this they distressed themselves: yet, I possess more
of what is called consequence, in the world, than any one in Mr. Burke's
catalogue of aristocrats.
Having thus
glanced at some of the defects of the two houses of parliament, I proceed to
what is called the crown, upon which I shall be very concise.
It
signifies a nominal office of a million sterling a year, the business of which
consists in receiving the money. Whether the person be wise or foolish, sane or
insane, a native or a foreigner, matters not. Every ministry acts upon the same
idea that Mr. Burke writes, namely, that the people must be hood-winked, and
held in superstitious ignorance by some bugbear or other; and what is called
the crown answers this purpose, and therefore it answers all the purposes to be
expected from it. This is more than can be said of the other two branches.
The hazard
to which this office is exposed in all countries, is not from anything that can
happen to the man, but from what may happen to the nation- the danger of its
coming to its senses.
It has been
customary to call the crown the executive power, and the custom is continued,
though the reason has ceased.
It was
called the executive, because the person whom it signified used, formerly, to
act in the character of a judge, in administering or executing the laws. The
tribunals were then a part of the court. The power, therefore, which is now
called the judicial, is what was called the executive and, consequently, one or
other of the terms is redundant, and one of the offices useless. When we speak
of the crown now, it means nothing; it signifies neither a judge nor a general:
besides which it is the laws that govern, and not the man. The old terms are
kept up, to give an appearance of consequence to empty forms; and the only
effect they have is that of increasing expenses.
Before I
proceed to the means of rendering governments more conducive to the general
happiness of mankind, than they are at present, it will not be improper to take
a review of the progress of taxation in England.
It is a
general idea, that when taxes are once laid on, they are never taken off.
However true this may have been of late, it was not always so. Either,
therefore, the people of former times were more watchful over government than
those of the present, or government was administered with less extravagance.
It is now
seven hundred years since the Norman conquest, and the establishment of what is
called the crown. Taking this portion of time in seven separate periods of one
hundred years each, the amount of the annual taxes, at each period, will be as
follows:
Annual taxes levied by William the Conqueror,
beginning
in the year 1066 L400,000
Annual taxes at 100 years from the conquest (1166) 200,000
Annual taxes at 200 years from the conquest (1266) 150,000
Annual taxes at 300 years from the conquest (1366) 130,000
Annual taxes at 400 years from the conquest (1466) 100,000
These
statements and those which follow, are taken from Sir John Sinclair's History
of the Revenue; by which it appears, that taxes continued decreasing for four
hundred years, at the expiration of which time they were reduced three-fourths,
viz., from four hundred thousand pounds to one hundred thousand. The people of
England of the present day, have a traditionary and historical idea of the
bravery of their ancestors; but whatever their virtues or their vices might
have been, they certainly were a people who would not be imposed upon, and who
kept governments in awe as to taxation, if not as to principle. Though they
were not able to expel the monarchical usurpation, they restricted it to a
republican economy of taxes.
Let us now
review the remaining three hundred years:
Annual amount of taxes at:
500 years from the conquest (1566) 500,000
600 years from the conquest (1666) 1,800,000
the present time (1791)
17,000,000
The
difference between the first four hundred years and the last three, is so
astonishing, as to warrant an opinion, that the national character of the
English has changed. It would have been impossible to have dragooned the former
English, into the excess of taxation that now exists; and when it is considered
that the pay of the army, the navy, and of all the revenue officers, is the same
now as it was about a hundred years ago, when the taxes were not above a tenth
part of what they are at present, it appears impossible to account for the
enormous increase and expenditure on any other ground, than extravagance,
corruption, and intrigue.*[31]
With the
Revolution of 1688, and more so since the Hanover succession, came the
destructive system of continental intrigues, and the rage for foreign wars and
foreign dominion; systems of such secure mystery that the expenses admit of no
accounts; a single line stands for millions. To what excess taxation might have
extended had not the French revolution contributed to break up the system, and
put an end to pretences, is impossible to say. Viewed, as that revolution ought
to be, as the fortunate means of lessening the load of taxes of both countries,
it is of as much importance to England as to France; and, if properly improved
to all the advantages of which it is capable, and to which it leads, deserves
as much celebration in one country as the other.
In pursuing
this subject, I shall begin with the matter that first presents itself, that of
lessening the burthen of taxes; and shall then add such matter and
propositions, respecting the three countries of England, France, and America,
as the present prospect of things appears to justify: I mean, an alliance of
the three, for the purposes that will be mentioned in their proper place.
What has
happened may happen again. By the statement before shown of the progress of
taxation, it is seen that taxes have been lessened to a fourth part of what
they had formerly been. Though the present circumstances do not admit of the
same reduction, yet they admit of such a beginning, as may accomplish that end
in less time than in the former case.
The amount
of taxes for the year ending at Michaelmas 1788, was as follows:
Land-tax L 1,950,000
Customs 3,789,274
Excise (including old and new malt) 6,751,727
Stamps 1,278,214
Miscellaneous taxes and incidents 1,803,755
---------------
L15,572,755
Since the
year 1788, upwards of one million new taxes have been laid on, besides the
produce of the lotteries; and as the taxes have in general been more productive
since than before, the amount may be taken, in round numbers, at L17,000,000.
(The expense of collection and the drawbacks, which together amount to nearly
two millions, are paid out of the gross amount; and the above is the net sum
paid into the exchequer). This sum of seventeen millions is applied to two
different purposes; the one to pay the interest of the National Debt, the other
to the current expenses of each year. About nine millions are appropriated to
the former; and the remainder, being nearly eight millions, to the latter. As
to the million, said to be applied to the reduction of the debt, it is so much
like paying with one hand and taking out with the other, as not to merit much
notice. It happened, fortunately for France, that she possessed national
domains for paying off her debt, and thereby lessening her taxes; but as this is
not the case with England, her reduction of taxes can only take place by
reducing the current expenses, which may now be done to the amount of four or
five millions annually, as will hereafter appear. When this is accomplished it
will more than counter-balance the enormous charge of the American war; and the
saving will be from the same source from whence the evil arose. As to the
national debt, however heavy the interest may be in taxes, yet, as it serves to
keep alive a capital useful to commerce, it balances by its effects a
considerable part of its own weight; and as the quantity of gold and silver is,
by some means or other, short of its proper proportion, being not more than
twenty millions, whereas it should be sixty (foreign intrigue, foreign wars, foreign
dominions, will in a great measure account for the deficiency), it would,
besides the injustice, be bad policy to extinguish a capital that serves to
supply that defect. But with respect to the current expense, whatever is saved
therefrom is gain. The excess may serve to keep corruption alive, but it has no
re-action on credit and commerce, like the interest of the debt.
It is now
very probable that the English Government (I do not mean the nation) is
unfriendly to the French Revolution. Whatever serves to expose the intrigue and
lessen the influence of courts, by lessening taxation, will be unwelcome to
those who feed upon the spoil. Whilst the clamour of French intrigue, arbitrary
power, popery, and wooden shoes could be kept up, the nation was easily allured
and alarmed into taxes. Those days are now past: deception, it is to be hoped,
has reaped its last harvest, and better times are in prospect for both
countries, and for the world.
Taking it
for granted that an alliance may be formed between England, France, and America
for the purposes hereafter to be mentioned, the national expenses of France and
England may consequently be lessened. The same fleets and armies will no longer
be necessary to either, and the reduction can be made ship for ship on each
side. But to accomplish these objects the governments must necessarily be
fitted to a common and correspondent principle. Confidence can never take place
while an hostile disposition remains in either, or where mystery and secrecy on
one side is opposed to candour and openness on the other.
These
matters admitted, the national expenses might be put back, for the sake of a
precedent, to what they were at some period when France and England were not
enemies. This, consequently, must be prior to the Hanover succession, and also
to the Revolution of 1688.*[32] The first instance that presents itself,
antecedent to those dates, is in the very wasteful and profligate times of
Charles the Second; at which time England and France acted as allies. If I have
chosen a period of great extravagance, it will serve to show modern
extravagance in a still worse light; especially as the pay of the navy, the
army, and the revenue officers has not increased since that time.
The peace
establishment was then as follows (see Sir John Sinclair's History of the
Revenue):
Navy L 300,000
Army 212,000
Ordnance 40,000
Civil List 462,115
------------
L1,014,115
The
parliament, however, settled the whole annual peace establishment at
$1,200,000.*[33] If we go back to the time of Elizabeth the amount of all the
taxes was but half a million, yet the nation sees nothing during that period
that reproaches it with want of consequence.
All
circumstances, then, taken together, arising from the French revolution, from
the approaching harmony and reciprocal interest of the two nations, the
abolition of the court intrigue on both sides, and the progress of knowledge in
the science of government, the annual expenditure might be put back to one
million and a half, viz.:
Navy L
500,000
Army 500,000
Expenses of Government 500,000
--------------
L1,500,000
Even this sum
is six times greater than the expenses of government are in America, yet the
civil internal government in England (I mean that administered by means of
quarter sessions, juries and assize, and which, in fact, is nearly the whole,
and performed by the nation), is less expense upon the revenue, than the same
species and portion of government is in America.
It is time
that nations should be rational, and not be governed like animals, for the
pleasure of their riders. To read the history of kings, a man would be almost
inclined to suppose that government consisted in stag-hunting, and that every
nation paid a million a-year to a huntsman. Man ought to have pride, or shame
enough to blush at being thus imposed upon, and when he feels his proper
character he will. Upon all subjects of this nature, there is often passing in
the mind, a train of ideas he has not yet accustomed himself to encourage and
communicate. Restrained by something that puts on the character of prudence, he
acts the hypocrite upon himself as well as to others. It is, however, curious
to observe how soon this spell can be dissolved. A single expression, boldly
conceived and uttered, will sometimes put a whole company into their proper
feelings: and whole nations are acted on in the same manner.
As to the
offices of which any civil government may be composed, it matters but little by
what names they are described. In the routine of business, as before observed,
whether a man be styled a president, a king, an emperor, a senator, or anything
else, it is impossible that any service he can perform, can merit from a nation
more than ten thousand pounds a year; and as no man should be paid beyond his
services, so every man of a proper heart will not accept more. Public money
ought to be touched with the most scrupulous consciousness of honour. It is not
the produce of riches only, but of the hard earnings of labour and poverty. It
is drawn even from the bitterness of want and misery. Not a beggar passes, or
perishes in the streets, whose mite is not in that mass.
Were it
possible that the Congress of America could be so lost to their duty, and to
the interest of their constituents, as to offer General Washington, as
president of America, a million a year, he would not, and he could not, accept
it. His sense of honour is of another kind. It has cost England almost seventy
millions sterling, to maintain a family imported from abroad, of very inferior
capacity to thousands in the nation; and scarcely a year has passed that has
not produced some new mercenary application. Even the physicians' bills have
been sent to the public to be paid. No wonder that jails are crowded, and taxes
and poor-rates increased. Under such systems, nothing is to be looked for but
what has already happened; and as to reformation, whenever it come, it must be
from the nation, and not from the government.
To show
that the sum of five hundred thousand pounds is more than sufficient to defray
all the expenses of the government, exclusive of navies and armies, the
following estimate is added, for any country, of the same extent as England.
In the
first place, three hundred representatives fairly elected, are sufficient for
all the purposes to which legislation can apply, and preferable to a larger
number. They may be divided into two or three houses, or meet in one, as in
France, or in any manner a constitution shall direct.
As
representation is always considered, in free countries, as the most honourable
of all stations, the allowance made to it is merely to defray the expense which
the representatives incur by that service, and not to it as an office.
If an
allowance, at the rate of five hundred pounds per annum, be made to every representative,
deducting for non-attendance, the expense, if the whole number attended for six months, each year, would be
L 75,00
The
official departments cannot reasonably exceed the following number, with the salaries annexed:
Three offices at ten thousand pounds each L
30,000
Ten ditto, at five thousand pounds each
50,000
Twenty ditto, at two thousand pounds each 40,000
Forty ditto, at one thousand pounds each 40,000
Two hundred ditto, at five hundred pounds each 100,000
Three hundred ditto, at two hundred pounds each 60,000
Five hundred ditto, at one hundred pounds each 50,000
Seven hundred ditto, at seventy-five pounds each 52,500
------------
L497,500
If a nation
choose, it can deduct four per cent. from all offices, and make one of twenty
thousand per annum.
All revenue
officers are paid out of the monies they collect, and therefore, are not in
this estimation.
The
foregoing is not offered as an exact detail of offices, but to show the number
of rate of salaries which five hundred thousand pounds will support; and it
will, on experience, be found impracticable to find business sufficient to
justify even this expense. As to the manner in which office business is now
performed, the Chiefs, in several offices, such as the post-office, and certain
offices in the exchequer, etc., do little more than sign their names three or
four times a year; and the whole duty is performed by under-clerks.
Taking,
therefore, one million and a half as a sufficient peace establishment for all
the honest purposes of government, which is three hundred thousand pounds more
than the peace establishment in the profligate and prodigal times of Charles
the Second (notwithstanding, as has been already observed, the pay and salaries
of the army, navy, and revenue officers, continue the same as at that period),
there will remain a surplus of upwards of six millions out of the present
current expenses. The question then will be, how to dispose of this surplus.
Whoever has
observed the manner in which trade and taxes twist themselves together, must be
sensible of the impossibility of separating them suddenly.
First.
Because the articles now on hand are already charged with the duty, and the
reduction cannot take place on the present stock.
Secondly.
Because, on all those articles on which the duty is charged in the gross, such as per barrel,
hogshead, hundred weight, or ton, the abolition of the duty does not admit of
being divided down so as fully to relieve the consumer, who purchases by the
pint, or the pound. The last duty laid on strong beer and ale was three
shillings per barrel, which, if taken off, would lessen the purchase only half
a farthing per pint, and consequently, would not reach to practical relief.
This being
the condition of a great part of the taxes, it will be necessary to look for
such others as are free from this embarrassment and where the relief will be
direct and visible, and capable of immediate operation.
In the
first place, then, the poor-rates are a direct tax which every house-keeper
feels, and who knows also, to a farthing, the sum which he pays. The national
amount of the whole of the poor-rates is not positively known, but can be
procured. Sir John Sinclair, in his History of the Revenue has stated it at
L2,100,587. A considerable part of which is expended in litigations, in which
the poor, instead of being relieved, are tormented. The expense, however, is
the same to the parish from whatever cause it arises.
In
Birmingham, the amount of poor-rates is fourteen thousand pounds a year. This,
though a large sum, is moderate, compared with the population. Birmingham is
said to contain seventy thousand souls, and on a proportion of seventy thousand
to fourteen thousand pounds poor-rates, the national amount of poor-rates,
taking the population of England as seven millions, would be but one million
four hundred thousand pounds. It is, therefore, most probable, that the
population of Birmingham is over-rated. Fourteen thousand pounds is the
proportion upon fifty thousand souls, taking two millions of poor-rates, as the
national amount.
Be it,
however, what it may, it is no other than the consequence of excessive burthen
of taxes, for, at the time when the taxes were very low, the poor were able to
maintain themselves; and there were no poor-rates.*[34] In the present state of
things a labouring man, with a wife or two or three children, does not pay less
than between seven and eight pounds a year in taxes. He is not sensible of
this, because it is disguised to him in the articles which he buys, and he
thinks only of their dearness; but as the taxes take from him, at least, a
fourth part of his yearly earnings, he is consequently disabled from providing
for a family, especially, if himself, or any of them, are afflicted with sickness.
The first
step, therefore, of practical relief, would be to abolish the poor-rates
entirely, and in lieu thereof, to make a remission of taxes to the poor of
double the amount of the present poor-rates, viz., four millions annually out
of the surplus taxes. By this measure, the poor would be benefited two
millions, and the house-keepers two millions. This alone would be equal to a
reduction of one hundred and twenty millions of the National Debt, and
consequently equal to the whole expense of the American War.
It will
then remain to be considered, which is the most effectual mode of distributing
this remission of four millions.
It is
easily seen, that the poor are generally composed of large families of
children, and old people past their labour. If these two classes are provided
for, the remedy will so far reach to the full extent of the case, that what
remains will be incidental, and, in a great measure, fall within the compass of
benefit clubs, which, though of humble invention, merit to be ranked among the
best of modern institutions.
Admitting
England to contain seven millions of souls; if one-fifth thereof are of that
class of poor which need support, the number will be one million four hundred
thousand. Of this number, one hundred and forty thousand will be aged poor, as
will be hereafter shown, and for which a distinct provision will be proposed.
There will
then remain one million two hundred and sixty thousand which, at five souls to
each family, amount to two hundred and fifty-two thousand families, rendered
poor from the expense of children and the weight of taxes.
The number
of children under fourteen years of age, in each of those families, will be
found to be about five to every two families; some having two, and others three;
some one, and others four: some none, and others five; but it rarely happens
that more than five are under fourteen years of age, and after this age they
are capable of service or of being apprenticed.
Allowing
five children (under fourteen years) to every two families,
The number of children will be 630,000
The number of parents, were they all living,
would be 504,000
It is
certain, that if the children are provided for, the parents are relieved of
consequence, because it is from the expense of bringing up children that their
poverty arises.
Having thus
ascertained the greatest number that can be supposed to need support on account
of young families, I proceed to the mode of relief or distribution, which is,
To pay as a
remission of taxes to every poor family, out of the surplus taxes, and in room
of poor-rates, four pounds a year for every child under fourteen years of age;
enjoining the parents of such children to send them to school, to learn
reading, writing, and common arithmetic; the ministers of every parish, of
every denomination to certify jointly to an office, for that purpose, that this
duty is performed. The amount of this expense will be,
For six hundred and thirty thousand
children
at four pounds per annum each L2,520,000
By adopting
this method, not only the poverty of the parents will be relieved, but
ignorance will be banished from the rising generation, and the number of poor
will hereafter become less, because their abilities, by the aid of education,
will be greater. Many a youth, with good natural genius, who is apprenticed to
a mechanical trade, such as a carpenter, joiner, millwright, shipwright,
blacksmith, etc., is prevented getting forward the whole of his life from the
want of a little common education when a boy.
I now
proceed to the case of the aged.
I divide
age into two classes. First, the approach of age, beginning at fifty. Secondly,
old age commencing at sixty.
At fifty,
though the mental faculties of man are in full vigour, and his judgment better
than at any preceding date, the bodily powers for laborious life are on the
decline. He cannot bear the same quantity of fatigue as at an earlier period.
He begins to earn less, and is less capable of enduring wind and weather; and
in those more retired employments where much sight is required, he fails apace,
and sees himself, like an old horse, beginning to be turned adrift.
At sixty
his labour ought to be over, at least from direct necessity. It is painful to
see old age working itself to death, in what are called civilised countries,
for daily bread.
To form
some judgment of the number of those above fifty years of age, I have several
times counted the persons I met in the streets of London, men, women, and
children, and have generally found that the average is about one in sixteen or
seventeen. If it be said that aged persons do not come much into the streets,
so neither do infants; and a great proportion of grown children are in schools
and in work-shops as apprentices. Taking, then, sixteen for a divisor, the
whole number of persons in England of fifty years and upwards, of both sexes,
rich and poor, will be four hundred and twenty thousand.
The persons
to be provided for out of this gross number will be husbandmen, common
labourers, journeymen of every trade and their wives, sailors, and disbanded
soldiers, worn out servants of both sexes, and poor widows.
There will
be also a considerable number of middling tradesmen, who having lived decently
in the former part of life, begin, as age approaches, to lose their business,
and at last fall to decay.
Besides
these there will be constantly thrown off from the revolutions of that wheel
which no man can stop nor regulate, a number from every class of life connected
with commerce and adventure.
To provide
for all those accidents, and whatever else may befall, I take the number of
persons who, at one time or other of their lives, after fifty years of age, may
feel it necessary or comfortable to be better supported, than they can support
themselves, and that not as a matter of grace and favour, but of right, at
one-third of the whole number, which is one hundred and forty thousand, as
stated in a previous page, and for whom a distinct provision was proposed to be
made. If there be more, society, notwithstanding the show and pomposity of
government, is in a deplorable condition in England.
Of this one
hundred and forty thousand, I take one half, seventy thousand, to be of the age
of fifty and under sixty, and the other half to be sixty years and upwards.
Having thus ascertained the probable proportion of the number of aged persons,
I proceed to the mode of rendering their condition comfortable, which is:
To pay to
every such person of the age of fifty years, and until he shall arrive at the
age of sixty, the sum of six pounds per annum out of the surplus taxes, and ten
pounds per annum during life after the age of sixty. The expense of which will
be,
Seventy
thousand persons, at L6 per annum L
420,000
Seventy thousand persons, at L10 per annum 700,000
-------------
L1,120,000
This
support, as already remarked, is not of the nature of a charity but of a right.
Every person in England, male and female, pays on an average in taxes two
pounds eight shillings and sixpence per annum from the day of his (or her)
birth; and, if the expense of collection be added, he pays two pounds eleven
shillings and sixpence; consequently, at the end of fifty years he has paid one
hundred and twenty-eight pounds fifteen shillings; and at sixty one hundred and
fifty-four pounds ten shillings. Converting, therefore, his (or her) individual
tax in a tontine, the money he shall receive after fifty years is but little
more than the legal interest of the net money he has paid; the rest is made up
from those whose circumstances do not require them to draw such support, and
the capital in both cases defrays the expenses of government. It is on this
ground that I have extended the probable claims to one-third of the number of
aged persons in the nation.- Is it, then, better that the lives of one hundred
and forty thousand aged persons be rendered comfortable, or that a million a
year of public money be expended on any one individual, and him often of the
most worthless or insignificant character? Let reason and justice, let honour
and humanity, let even hypocrisy, sycophancy and Mr. Burke, let George, let
Louis, Leopold, Frederic, Catherine, Cornwallis, or Tippoo Saib, answer the
question.*[35]
The sum
thus remitted to the poor will be,
To two hundred and fifty-two
thousand poor families,
containing six hundred and thirty
thousand children L2,520,000
To one hundred and forty thousand
aged persons 1,120,000
----------------
L3,640,000
There will
then remain three hundred and sixty thousand pounds out of the four millions,
part of which may be applied as follows:-
After all
the above cases are provided for there will still be a number of families who,
though not properly of the class of poor, yet find it difficult to give
education to their children; and such children, under such a case, would be in
a worse condition than if their parents were actually poor. A nation under a
well-regulated government should permit none to remain uninstructed. It is
monarchical and aristocratical government only that requires ignorance for its
support.
Suppose,
then, four hundred thousand children to be in this condition, which is a
greater number than ought to be supposed after the provisions already made, the
method will be:
To allow
for each of those children ten shillings a year for the expense of schooling
for six years each, which will give them six months schooling each year, and
half a crown a year for paper and spelling books.
The expense
of this will be annually L250,000.*[36]
There will
then remain one hundred and ten thousand pounds.
Notwithstanding
the great modes of relief which the best instituted and best principled
government may devise, there will be a number of smaller cases, which it is
good policy as well as beneficence in a nation to consider.
Were twenty
shillings to be given immediately on the birth of a child, to every woman who
should make the demand, and none will make it whose circumstances do not
require it, it might relieve a great deal of instant distress.
There are
about two hundred thousand births yearly in England; and if claimed by one
fourth,
The amount would be L50,000
And twenty
shillings to every new-married couple who should claim in like manner. This
would not exceed the sum of L20,000.
Also twenty
thousand pounds to be appropriated to defray the funeral expenses of persons,
who, travelling for work, may die at a distance from their friends. By
relieving parishes from this charge, the sick stranger will be better treated.
I shall
finish this part of the subject with a plan adapted to the particular condition
of a metropolis, such as London.
Cases are
continually occurring in a metropolis, different from those which occur in the
country, and for which a different, or rather an additional, mode of relief is
necessary. In the country, even in large towns, people have a knowledge of each
other, and distress never rises to that extreme height it sometimes does in a
metropolis. There is no such thing in the country as persons, in the literal
sense of the word, starved to death, or dying with cold from the want of a
lodging. Yet such cases, and others equally as miserable, happen in London.
Many a
youth comes up to London full of expectations, and with little or no money, and
unless he get immediate employment he is already half undone; and boys bred up
in London without any means of a livelihood, and as it often happens of
dissolute parents, are in a still worse condition; and servants long out of
place are not much better off. In short, a world of little cases is continually
arising, which busy or affluent life knows not of, to open the first door to
distress. Hunger is not among the postponable wants, and a day, even a few
hours, in such a condition is often the crisis of a life of ruin.
These
circumstances which are the general cause of the little thefts and pilferings
that lead to greater, may be prevented. There yet remain twenty thousand pounds
out of the four millions of surplus taxes, which with another fund hereafter to
be mentioned, amounting to about twenty thousand pounds more, cannot be better applied
than to this purpose. The plan will then be:
First, To
erect two or more buildings, or take some already erected, capable of
containing at least six thousand persons, and to have in each of these places
as many kinds of employment as can be contrived, so that every person who shall
come may find something which he or she can do.
Secondly,
To receive all who shall come, without enquiring who or what they are. The only
condition to be, that for so much, or so many hours' work, each person shall
receive so many meals of wholesome food, and a warm lodging, at least as good
as a barrack. That a certain portion of what each person's work shall be worth
shall be reserved, and given to him or her, on their going away; and that each
person shall stay as long or as short a time, or come as often as he choose, on
these conditions.
If each
person stayed three months, it would assist by rotation twenty-four thousand
persons annually, though the real number, at all times, would be but six
thousand. By establishing an asylum of this kind, such persons to whom
temporary distresses occur, would have an opportunity to recruit themselves,
and be enabled to look out for better employment.
Allowing
that their labour paid but one half the expense of supporting them, after
reserving a portion of their earnings for themselves, the sum of forty thousand
pounds additional would defray all other charges for even a greater number than
six thousand.
The fund
very properly convertible to this purpose, in addition to the twenty thousand
pounds, remaining of the former fund, will be the produce of the tax upon
coals, so iniquitously and wantonly applied to the support of the Duke of
Richmond. It is horrid that any man, more especially at the price coals now
are, should live on the distresses of a community; and any government
permitting such an abuse, deserves to be dismissed. This fund is said to be
about twenty thousand pounds per annum.
I shall now
conclude this plan with enumerating the several particulars, and then proceed
to other matters.
The
enumeration is as follows:--
First, Abolition of two millions poor-rates.
Secondly, Provision for two hundred and fifty thousand poor
families.
Thirdly, Education for one million and thirty thousand
children.
Fourthly, Comfortable provision for one hundred and forty
thousand aged persons.
Fifthly, Donation of twenty shillings each for fifty
thousand births.
Sixthly, Donation of twenty shillings each for twenty
thousand marriages.
Seventhly, Allowance of twenty thousand pounds for the
funeral expenses of persons travelling for work, and dying at a distance from
their friends.
Eighthly, Employment, at all times, for the casual poor in
the cities of London and Westminster.
By the
operation of this plan, the poor laws, those instruments of civil torture, will
be superseded, and the wasteful expense of litigation prevented. The hearts of
the humane will not be shocked by ragged and hungry children, and persons of
seventy and eighty years of age, begging for bread. The dying poor will not be
dragged from place to place to breathe their last, as a reprisal of parish upon
parish. Widows will have a maintenance for their children, and not be carted
away, on the death of their husbands, like culprits and criminals; and children
will no longer be considered as increasing the distresses of their parents. The
haunts of the wretched will be known, because it will be to their advantage;
and the number of petty crimes, the offspring of distress and poverty, will be
lessened. The poor, as well as the rich, will then be interested in the support
of government, and the cause and apprehension of riots and tumults will cease.-
Ye who sit in ease, and solace yourselves in plenty, and such there are in
Turkey and Russia, as well as in England, and who say to yourselves, "Are
we not well off?" have ye thought of these things? When ye do, ye will
cease to speak and feel for yourselves alone.
The plan is
easy in practice. It does not embarrass trade by a sudden interruption in the order
of taxes, but effects the relief by changing the application of them; and the
money necessary for the purpose can be drawn from the excise collections, which
are made eight times a year in every market town in England.
Having now
arranged and concluded this subject, I proceed to the next.
Taking the
present current expenses at seven millions and an half, which is the least
amount they are now at, there will remain (after the sum of one million and an
half be taken for the new current expenses and four millions for the
before-mentioned service) the sum of two millions; part of which to be applied
as follows:
Though
fleets and armies, by an alliance with France, will, in a great measure, become
useless, yet the persons who have devoted themselves to those services, and
have thereby unfitted themselves for other lines of life, are not to be
sufferers by the means that make others happy. They are a different description
of men from those who form or hang about a court.
A part of
the army will remain, at least for some years, and also of the navy, for which
a provision is already made in the former part of this plan of one million,
which is almost half a million more than the peace establishment of the army
and navy in the prodigal times of Charles the Second.
Suppose,
then, fifteen thousand soldiers to be disbanded, and that an allowance be made
to each of three shillings a week during life, clear of all deductions, to be
paid in the same manner as the Chelsea College pensioners are paid, and for
them to return to their trades and their friends; and also that an addition of
fifteen thousand sixpences per week be made to the pay of the soldiers who
shall remain; the annual expenses will be:
To the pay of fifteen thousand
disbanded soldiers
at three shillings per
week L117,000
Additional pay to the remaining
soldiers 19,500
Suppose that the pay to the
officers of the
disbanded corps be the same
amount as sum allowed
to the men 117,000
------------
L253,500
To prevent bulky estimations, admit
the same sum
to the disbanded navy as to
the army,
and the same increase of
pay 253,500
-----------
Total L507,000
Every year
some part of this sum of half a million (I omit the odd seven thousand pounds
for the purpose of keeping the account unembarrassed) will fall in, and the
whole of it in time, as it is on the ground of life annuities, except the
increased pay of twenty-nine thousand pounds. As it falls in, part of the taxes
may be taken off; and as, for instance, when thirty thousand pounds fall in,
the duty on hops may be wholly taken off; and as other parts fall in, the
duties on candles and soap may be lessened, till at last they will totally
cease. There now remains at least one million and a half of surplus taxes.
The tax on
houses and windows is one of those direct taxes, which, like the poor-rates, is
not confounded with trade; and, when taken off, the relief will be instantly
felt. This tax falls heavy on the middle class of people. The amount of this
tax, by the returns of 1788, was:
Houses and windows: L s.
d.
By the act of 1766 385,459 11
7
By the act be 1779 130,739 14
5 1/2
--------------------------
Total 516,199 6
0 1/2
If this tax
be struck off, there will then remain about one million of surplus taxes; and
as it is always proper to keep a sum in reserve, for incidental matters, it may
be best not to extend reductions further in the first instance, but to consider
what may be accomplished by other modes of reform.
Among the
taxes most heavily felt is the commutation tax. I shall therefore offer a plan
for its abolition, by substituting another in its place, which will effect
three objects at once: 1, that of removing the burthen to where it can best be
borne; 2, restoring justice among families by a distribution of property; 3,
extirpating the overgrown influence arising from the unnatural law of
primogeniture, which is one of the principal sources of corruption at
elections. The amount of commutation tax by the returns of 1788, was L771,657.
When taxes
are proposed, the country is amused by the plausible language of taxing
luxuries. One thing is called a luxury at one time, and something else at
another; but the real luxury does not consist in the article, but in the means
of procuring it, and this is always kept out of sight.
I know not
why any plant or herb of the field should be a greater luxury in one country
than another; but an overgrown estate in either is a luxury at all times, and,
as such, is the proper object of taxation. It is, therefore, right to take
those kind tax-making gentlemen up on their own word, and argue on the
principle themselves have laid down, that of taxing luxuries. If they or their
champion, Mr. Burke, who, I fear, is growing out of date, like the man in
armour, can prove that an estate of twenty, thirty, or forty thousand pounds a
year is not a luxury, I will give up the argument.
Admitting
that any annual sum, say, for instance, one thousand pounds, is necessary or
sufficient for the support of a family, consequently the second thousand is of
the nature of a luxury, the third still more so, and by proceeding on, we shall
at last arrive at a sum that may not improperly be called a prohibitable
luxury. It would be impolitic to set bounds to property acquired by industry,
and therefore it is right to place the prohibition beyond the probable
acquisition to which industry can extend; but there ought to be a limit to
property or the accumulation of it by bequest. It should pass in some other
line. The richest in every nation have poor relations, and those often very
near in consanguinity.
The
following table of progressive taxation is constructed on the above principles,
and as a substitute for the commutation tax. It will reach the point of
prohibition by a regular operation, and thereby supersede the aristocratical
law of primogeniture.
TABLE I
A tax on
all estates of the clear yearly value of L50, after deducting the land tax, and
up
|
To L500 |
0s |
3d per
pound |
|
From L500 to L1000 |
0 |
6 |
|
On the second thousand |
0 |
9 |
|
On the third thousand |
1 |
0 |
|
On the fourth thousand |
1 |
6 |
|
On the fifth thousand |
2 |
0 |
|
On the sixth thousand |
3 |
0 |
|
On the seventh thousand |
4 |
0 |
|
On the eighth thousand |
5 |
0 |
|
On the ninth thousand |
6s |
0d per
pound |
|
On the tenth thousand |
7 |
0 |
|
On the eleventh thousand |
8 |
0 |
|
On the twelfth thousand |
9 |
0 |
|
On the thirteenth thousand |
10 |
0 |
|
On the fourteenth thousand |
11 |
0 |
|
On the fifteenth thousand |
12 |
0 |
|
On the sixteenth thousand |
13 |
0 |
|
On the seventeenth thousand |
14 |
0 |
|
On the eighteenth thousand |
15 |
0 |
|
On the nineteenth thousand |
16 |
0 |
|
On the twentieth thousand |
17 |
0 |
|
On the twenty-first thousand |
18 |
0 |
|
On the twenty-second thousand |
19 |
0 |
|
On the twenty-third thousand |
20 |
0 |
The
foregoing table shows the progression per pound on every progressive thousand. The
following table shows the amount of the tax on every thousand separately, and
in the last column the total amount of all the separate sums collected.
TABLE II
An estate
of:
|
L 50 per
annum |
at 3d per
pound pays |
L0 |
12 |
6 |
|
100 per
annum |
at 3d per
pound pays |
1 |
5 |
0 |
|
200 per
annum |
at 3d per
pound pays |
2 |
10 |
0 |
|
300 per
annum |
at 3d per
pound pays |
3 |
15 |
0 |
|
400 per
annum |
at 3d per
pound pays |
5 |
0 |
0 |
|
500 per
annum |
at 3d per
pound pays |
7 |
5 |
0 |
After L500,
the tax of 6d. per pound takes place on the second L500; consequently an estate
of L1,000 per annum pays L2l, 15s., and so on.
Total
amount
For the 1st
L500 at 0s 3d per pound L7
5s
2nd " 0
6 14 10
L21 15s
2nd 1000 at 0 9 37 11
59 5
3rd " 1
0 50 0
109 5
(Total
amount)
4th 1000
at 1s
6d per pound L75 0s
L184 5s
5th " 2
0 100 0
284 5
6th " 3
0 150 0
434 5
7th " 4
0 200 0
634 5
8th " 5
0 250 0
880 5
9th " 6
0 300 0
1100 5
10th " 7
0 350 0
1530 5
11th " 8
0 400 0
1930 5
12th " 9
0 450 0
2380 5
13th " 10
0 500 0
2880 5
14th " 11
0 550 0
3430 5
15th " 12
0 600 0 4030
5
16th " 13
0 650 0
4680 5
17th " 14
0 700 0
5380 5
18th " 15
0 750 0
6130 5
19th " 16
0 800 0
6930 5
20th " 17
0 850 0
7780 5
21st " 18
0 900 0
8680 5
(Total amount)
22nd 1000
at 19s
0d per pound L950 0s L9630
5s
23rd " 20
0 1000 0
10630 5
At the
twenty-third thousand the tax becomes 20s. in the pound, and consequently every
thousand beyond that sum can produce no profit but by dividing the estate. Yet
formidable as this tax appears, it will not, I believe, produce so much as the
commutation tax; should it produce more, it ought to be lowered to that amount
upon estates under two or three thousand a year.
On small
and middling estates it is lighter (as it is intended to be) than the
commutation tax. It is not till after seven or eight thousand a year that it
begins to be heavy. The object is not so much the produce of the tax as the
justice of the measure. The aristocracy has screened itself too much, and this
serves to restore a part of the lost equilibrium.
As an
instance of its screening itself, it is only necessary to look back to the
first establishment of the excise laws, at what is called the Restoration, or
the coming of Charles the Second. The aristocratical interest then in power,
commuted the feudal services itself was under, by laying a tax on beer brewed
for sale; that is, they compounded with Charles for an exemption from those
services for themselves and their heirs, by a tax to be paid by other people.
The aristocracy do not purchase beer brewed for sale, but brew their own beer
free of the duty, and if any commutation at that time were necessary, it ought
to have been at the expense of those for whom the exemptions from those
services were intended;*[37] instead of which, it was thrown on an entirely
different class of men.
But the
chief object of this progressive tax (besides the justice of rendering taxes
more equal than they are) is, as already stated, to extirpate the overgrown
influence arising from the unnatural law of primogeniture, and which is one of
the principal sources of corruption at elections.
It would be
attended with no good consequences to enquire how such vast estates as thirty,
forty, or fifty thousand a year could commence, and that at a time when
commerce and manufactures were not in a state to admit of such acquisitions.
Let it be sufficient to remedy the evil by putting them in a condition of
descending again to the community by the quiet means of apportioning them among
all the heirs and heiresses of those families. This will be the more necessary,
because hitherto the aristocracy have quartered their younger children and
connections upon the public in useless posts, places and offices, which when
abolished will leave them destitute, unless the law of primogeniture be also
abolished or superseded.
A
progressive tax will, in a great measure, effect this object, and that as a
matter of interest to the parties most immediately concerned, as will be seen
by the following table; which shows the net produce upon every estate, after
subtracting the tax. By this it will appear that after an estate exceeds
thirteen or fourteen thousand a year, the remainder produces but little profit
to the holder, and consequently, Will pass either to the younger children, or
to other kindred.
TABLE III
Showing the
net produce of every estate from one thousand o twenty-three thousand pounds a
year
|
No of
thousand per annum |
Total tax
subtracted |
Net
produce |
|
L1000 |
L21 |
L979 |
|
2000 |
59 |
1941 |
|
3000 |
109 |
2891 |
|
4000 |
184 |
3816 |
|
5000 |
284 |
4716 |
|
6000 |
434 |
5566 |
|
7000 |
634 |
6366 |
|
8000 |
880 |
7120 |
|
9000 |
1100 |
7900 |
|
10,000 |
1530 |
8470 |
|
11,000 |
1930 |
9070 |
|
12,000 |
2380 9620 |
13,000 |
|
2880 |
10,120 |
|
|
|
|
|
|
(No of thousand per annum) |
(Total tax subtracted) |
(Net produce) |
|
14,000 |
3430 |
10,570 |
|
15,000 |
4030 |
10,970 |
|
16,000 |
4680 |
11,320 |
|
17,000 |
5380 |
11,620 |
|
18,000 |
6130 |
11,870 |
|
19,000 |
6930 |
12,170 |
|
20,000 |
7780 |
12,220 |
|
21,000 |
8680 |
12,320 |
|
22,000 |
9630 |
12,370 |
|
23,000 |
10,630 |
12,370 |
|
|
|
|
N.B. The
odd shillings are dropped in this table.
According
to this table, an estate cannot produce more than L12,370 clear of the land tax
and the progressive tax, and therefore the dividing such estates will follow as
a matter of family interest. An estate of L23,000 a year, divided into five
estates of four thousand each and one of three, will be charged only L1,129
which is but five per cent., but if held by one possessor, will be charged
L10,630.
Although an
enquiry into the origin of those estates be unnecessary, the continuation of
them in their present state is another subject. It is a matter of national
concern. As hereditary estates, the law has created the evil, and it ought also
to provide the remedy. Primogeniture ought to be abolished, not only because it
is unnatural and unjust, but because the country suffers by its operation. By
cutting off (as before observed) the younger children from their proper portion
of inheritance, the public is loaded with the expense of maintaining them; and
the freedom of elections violated by the overbearing influence which this
unjust monopoly of family property produces. Nor is this all. It occasions a
waste of national property. A considerable part of the land of the country is
rendered unproductive, by the great extent of parks and chases which this law
serves to keep up, and this at a time when the annual production of grain is
not equal to the national consumption.*[38]- In short, the evils of the
aristocratical system are so great and numerous, so inconsistent with every
thing that is just, wise, natural, and beneficent, that when they are
considered, there ought not to be a doubt that many, who are now classed under
that description, will wish to see such a system abolished.
What
pleasure can they derive from contemplating the exposed condition, and almost
certain beggary of their younger offspring? Every aristocratical family has an
appendage of family beggars hanging round it, which in a few ages, or a few
generations, are shook off, and console themselves with telling their tale in
almshouses, workhouses, and prisons. This is the natural consequence of
aristocracy. The peer and the beggar are often of the same family. One extreme
produces the other: to make one rich many must be made poor; neither can the
system be supported by other means.
There are
two classes of people to whom the laws of England are particularly hostile, and
those the most helpless; younger children, and the poor. Of the former I have
just spoken; of the latter I shall mention one instance out of the many that
might be produced, and with which I shall close this subject.
Several
laws are in existence for regulating and limiting work-men's wages. Why not
leave them as free to make their own bargains, as the law-makers are to let
their farms and houses? Personal labour is all the property they have. Why is
that little, and the little freedom they enjoy, to be infringed? But the
injustice will appear stronger, if we consider the operation and effect of such
laws. When wages are fixed by what is called a law, the legal wages remain
stationary, while every thing else is in progression; and as those who make
that law still continue to lay on new taxes by other laws, they increase the
expense of living by one law, and take away the means by another.
But if
these gentlemen law-makers and tax-makers thought it right to limit the poor
pittance which personal labour can produce, and on which a whole family is to
be supported, they certainly must feel themselves happily indulged in a
limitation on their own part, of not less than twelve thousand a-year, and that
of property they never acquired (nor probably any of their ancestors), and of
which they have made never acquire so ill a use.
Having now
finished this subject, I shall bring the several particulars into one view, and
then proceed to other matters.
The first
eight articles, mentioned earlier, are;
1.
Abolition of two millions poor-rates.
2.
Provision for two hundred and fifty-two thousand poor families, at the rate of
four pounds per head for each child under fourteen years of age; which, with
the addition of two hundred and fifty thousand pounds, provides also education
for one million and thirty thousand children.
3. Annuity
of six pounds (per annum) each for all poor persons, decayed tradesmen, and
others (supposed seventy thousand) of the age of fifty years, and until sixty.
4. Annuity
of ten pounds each for life for all poor persons, decayed tradesmen, and others
(supposed seventy thousand) of the age of sixty years.
5. Donation
of twenty shillings each for fifty thousand births.
6. Donation
of twenty shillings each for twenty thousand marriages.
7.
Allowance of twenty thousand pounds for the funeral expenses of persons
travelling for work, and dying at a distance from their friends.
8.
Employment at all times for the casual poor in the cities of London and
Westminster.
SECOND
ENUMERATION
9.
Abolition of the tax on houses and windows.
10. Allowance
of three shillings per week for life to fifteen thousand disbanded soldiers,
and a proportionate allowance to the officers of the disbanded corps.
11.
Increase of pay to the remaining soldiers of L19,500 annually.
12. The
same allowance to the disbanded navy, and the same increase of pay, as to the
army.
13.
Abolition of the commutation tax.
14. Plan of
a progressive tax, operating to extirpate the unjust and unnatural law of
primogeniture, and the vicious influence of the aristocratical system.*[39]
There yet
remains, as already stated, one million of surplus taxes. Some part of this
will be required for circumstances that do not immediately present themselves,
and such part as shall not be wanted, will admit of a further reduction of
taxes equal to that amount.
Among the
claims that justice requires to be made, the condition of the inferior
revenue-officers will merit attention. It is a reproach to any government to
waste such an immensity of revenue in sinecures and nominal and unnecessary
places and officers, and not allow even a decent livelihood to those on whom
the labour falls. The salary of the inferior officers of the revenue has stood
at the petty pittance of less than fifty pounds a year for upwards of one
hundred years. It ought to be seventy. About one hundred and twenty thousand
pounds applied to this purpose, will put all those salaries in a decent
condition.
This was
proposed to be done almost twenty years ago, but the treasury-board then in
being, startled at it, as it might lead to similar expectations from the army
and navy; and the event was, that the King, or somebody for him, applied to
parliament to have his own salary raised an hundred thousand pounds a year,
which being done, every thing else was laid aside.
With respect
to another class of men, the inferior clergy, I forbear to enlarge on their
condition; but all partialities and prejudices for, or against, different modes
and forms of religion aside, common justice will determine, whether there ought
to be an income of twenty or thirty pounds a year to one man, and of ten
thousand to another. I speak on this subject with the more freedom, because I
am known not to be a Presbyterian; and therefore the cant cry of court
sycophants, about church and meeting, kept up to amuse and bewilder the nation,
cannot be raised against me.
Ye simple
men on both sides the question, do you not see through this courtly craft? If
ye can be kept disputing and wrangling about church and meeting, ye just answer
the purpose of every courtier, who lives the while on the spoils of the taxes,
and laughs at your credulity. Every religion is good that teaches man to be
good; and I know of none that instructs him to be bad.
All the
before-mentioned calculations suppose only sixteen millions and an half of
taxes paid into the exchequer, after the expense of collection and drawbacks at
the custom-house and excise-office are deducted; whereas the sum paid into the
exchequer is very nearly, if not quite, seventeen millions. The taxes raised in
Scotland and Ireland are expended in those countries, and therefore their
savings will come out of their own taxes; but if any part be paid into the
English exchequer, it might be remitted. This will not make one hundred
thousand pounds a year difference.
There now
remains only the national debt to be considered. In the year 1789, the
interest, exclusive of the tontine, was L9,150,138. How much the capital has
been reduced since that time the minister best knows. But after paying the
interest, abolishing the tax on houses and windows, the commutation tax, and
the poor-rates; and making all the provisions for the poor, for the education
of children, the support of the aged, the disbanded part of the army and navy,
and increasing the pay of the remainder, there will be a surplus of one
million.
The present
scheme of paying off the national debt appears to me, speaking as an
indifferent person, to be an ill-concerted, if not a fallacious job. The
burthen of the national debt consists not in its being so many millions, or so
many hundred millions, but in the quantity of taxes collected every year to pay
the interest. If this quantity continues the same, the burthen of the national
debt is the same to all intents and purposes, be the capital more or less. The
only knowledge which the public can have of the reduction of the debt, must be
through the reduction of taxes for paying the interest. The debt, therefore, is
not reduced one farthing to the public by all the millions that have been paid;
and it would require more money now to purchase up the capital, than when the
scheme began.
Digressing
for a moment at this point, to which I shall return again, I look back to the
appointment of Mr. Pitt, as minister.
I was then
in America. The war was over; and though resentment had ceased, memory was
still alive.
When the
news of the coalition arrived, though it was a matter of no concern to I felt
it as a man. It had something in it which shocked, by publicly sporting with
decency, if not with principle. It was impudence in Lord North; it was a want
of firmness in Mr. Fox.
Mr. Pitt
was, at that time, what may be called a maiden character in politics. So far
from being hackneyed, he appeared not to be initiated into the first mysteries
of court intrigue. Everything was in his favour. Resentment against the
coalition served as friendship to him, and his ignorance of vice was credited
for virtue. With the return of peace, commerce and prosperity would rise of
itself; yet even this increase was thrown to his account.
When he
came to the helm, the storm was over, and he had nothing to interrupt his
course. It required even ingenuity to be wrong, and he succeeded. A little time
showed him the same sort of man as his predecessors had been. Instead of
profiting by those errors which had accumulated a burthen of taxes unparalleled
in the world, he sought, I might almost say, he advertised for enemies, and
provoked means to increase taxation. Aiming at something, he knew not what, he
ransacked Europe and India for adventures, and abandoning the fair pretensions
he began with, he became the knight-errant of modern times.
It is
unpleasant to see character throw itself away. It is more so to see one's-self
deceived. Mr. Pitt had merited nothing, but he promised much. He gave symptoms
of a mind superior to the meanness and corruption of courts. His apparent
candour encouraged expectations; and the public confidence, stunned, wearied,
and confounded by a chaos of parties, revived and attached itself to him. But
mistaking, as he has done, the disgust of the nation against the coalition, for
merit in himself, he has rushed into measures which a man less supported would
not have presumed to act.
All this
seems to show that change of ministers amounts to nothing. One goes out,
another comes in, and still the same measures, vices, and extravagance are
pursued. It signifies not who is minister. The defect lies in the system. The
foundation and the superstructure of the government is bad. Prop it as you
please, it continually sinks into court government, and ever will.
I return,
as I promised, to the subject of the national debt, that offspring of the
Dutch-Anglo revolution, and its handmaid the Hanover succession.
But it is
now too late to enquire how it began. Those to whom it is due have advanced the
money; and whether it was well or ill spent, or pocketed, is not their crime.
It is, however, easy to see, that as the nation proceeds in contemplating the
nature and principles of government, and to understand taxes, and make
comparisons between those of America, France, and England, it will be next to
impossible to keep it in the same torpid state it has hitherto been. Some
reform must, from the necessity of the case, soon begin. It is not whether
these principles press with little or much force in the present moment. They
are out. They are abroad in the world, and no force can stop them. Like a
secret told, they are beyond recall; and he must be blind indeed that does not
see that a change is already beginning.
Nine
millions of dead taxes is a serious thing; and this not only for bad, but in a
great measure for foreign government. By putting the power of making war into
the hands of the foreigners who came for what they could get, little else was
to be expected than what has happened.
Reasons are
already advanced in this work, showing that whatever the reforms in the taxes
may be, they ought to be made in the current expenses of government, and not in
the part applied to the interest of the national debt. By remitting the taxes
of the poor, they will be totally relieved, and all discontent will be taken
away; and by striking off such of the taxes as are already mentioned, the
nation will more than recover the whole expense of the mad American war.
There will
then remain only the national debt as a subject of discontent; and in order to
remove, or rather to prevent this, it would be good policy in the stockholders
themselves to consider it as property, subject like all other property, to bear
some portion of the taxes. It would give to it both popularity and security,
and as a great part of its present inconvenience is balanced by the capital
which it keeps alive, a measure of this kind would so far add to that balance
as to silence objections.
This may be
done by such gradual means as to accomplish all that is necessary with the
greatest ease and convenience.
Instead of
taxing the capital, the best method would be to tax the interest by some
progressive ratio, and to lessen the public taxes in the same proportion as the
interest diminished.
Suppose the
interest was taxed one halfpenny in the pound the first year, a penny more the
second, and to proceed by a certain ratio to be determined upon, always less
than any other tax upon property. Such a tax would be subtracted from the
interest at the time of payment, without any expense of collection.
One
halfpenny in the pound would lessen the interest and consequently the taxes,
twenty thousand pounds. The tax on wagons amounts to this sum, and this tax
might be taken off the first year. The second year the tax on female servants,
or some other of the like amount might also be taken off, and by proceeding in
this manner, always applying the tax raised from the property of the debt
toward its extinction, and not carry it to the current services, it would
liberate itself.
The
stockholders, notwithstanding this tax, would pay less taxes than they do now.
What they would save by the extinction of the poor-rates, and the tax on houses
and windows, and the commutation tax, would be considerably greater than what
this tax, slow, but certain in its operation, amounts to.
It appears
to me to be prudence to look out for measures that may apply under any
circumstances that may approach. There is, at this moment, a crisis in the
affairs of Europe that requires it. Preparation now is wisdom. If taxation be
once let loose, it will be difficult to re-instate it; neither would the relief
be so effectual, as if it proceeded by some certain and gradual reduction.
The fraud,
hypocrisy, and imposition of governments, are now beginning to be too well
understood to promise them any long career. The farce of monarchy and
aristocracy, in all countries, is following that of chivalry, and Mr. Burke is
dressing aristocracy, in all countries, is following that of chivalry, and Mr.
Burke is dressing for the funeral. Let it then pass quietly to the tomb of all
other follies, and the mourners be comforted.
The time is
not very distant when England will laugh at itself for sending to Holland,
Hanover, Zell, or Brunswick for men, at the expense of a million a year, who
understood neither her laws, her language, nor her interest, and whose
capacities would scarcely have fitted them for the office of a parish
constable. If government could be trusted to such hands, it must be some easy
and simple thing indeed, and materials fit for all the purposes may be found in
every town and village in England.
When it
shall be said in any country in the world, my poor are happy; neither ignorance
nor distress is to be found among them; my jails are empty of prisoners, my
streets of beggars; the aged are not in want, the taxes are not oppressive; the
rational world is my friend, because I am the friend of its happiness: when
these things can be said, then may that country boast its constitution and its
government.
Within the
space of a few years we have seen two revolutions, those of America and France.
In the former, the contest was long, and the conflict severe; in the latter,
the nation acted with such a consolidated impulse, that having no foreign enemy
to contend with, the revolution was complete in power the moment it appeared.
From both those instances it is evident, that the greatest forces that can be
brought into the field of revolutions, are reason and common interest. Where
these can have the opportunity of acting, opposition dies with fear, or
crumbles away by conviction. It is a great standing which they have now
universally obtained; and we may hereafter hope to see revolutions, or changes
in governments, produced with the same quiet operation by which any measure,
determinable by reason and discussion, is accomplished.
When a
nation changes its opinion and habits of thinking, it is no longer to be
governed as before; but it would not only be wrong, but bad policy, to attempt
by force what ought to be accomplished by reason. Rebellion consists in
forcibly opposing the general will of a nation, whether by a party or by a
government. There ought, therefore, to be in every nation a method of
occasionally ascertaining the state of public opinion with respect to
government. On this point the old government of France was superior to the
present government of England, because, on extraordinary occasions, recourse
could be had what was then called the States General. But in England there are
no such occasional bodies; and as to those who are now called Representatives,
a great part of them are mere machines of the court, placemen, and dependants.
I presume,
that though all the people of England pay taxes, not an hundredth part of them
are electors, and the members of one of the houses of parliament represent
nobody but themselves. There is, therefore, no power but the voluntary will of
the people that has a right to act in any matter respecting a general reform;
and by the same right that two persons can confer on such a subject, a thousand
may. The object, in all such preliminary proceedings, is to find out what the
general sense of a nation is, and to be governed by it. If it prefer a bad or
defective government to a reform or choose to pay ten times more taxes than
there is any occasion for, it has a right so to do; and so long as the majority
do not impose conditions on the minority, different from what they impose upon
themselves, though there may be much error, there is no injustice. Neither will
the error continue long. Reason and discussion will soon bring things right,
however wrong they may begin. By such a process no tumult is to be apprehended.
The poor, in all countries, are naturally both peaceable and grateful in all
reforms in which their interest and happiness is included. It is only by
neglecting and rejecting them that they become tumultuous.
The objects
that now press on the public attention are, the French revolution, and the
prospect of a general revolution in governments. Of all nations in Europe there
is none so much interested in the French revolution as England. Enemies for
ages, and that at a vast expense, and without any national object, the
opportunity now presents itself of amicably closing the scene, and joining
their efforts to reform the rest of Europe. By doing this they will not only
prevent the further effusion of blood, and increase of taxes, but be in a
condition of getting rid of a considerable part of their present burthens, as
has been already stated. Long experience however has shown, that reforms of
this kind are not those which old governments wish to promote, and therefore it
is to nations, and not to such governments, that these matters present
themselves.
In the
preceding part of this work, I have spoken of an alliance between England,
France, and America, for purposes that were to be afterwards mentioned. Though
I have no direct authority on the part of America, I have good reason to
conclude, that she is disposed to enter into a consideration of such a measure,
provided, that the governments with which she might ally, acted as national
governments, and not as courts enveloped in intrigue and mystery. That France
as a nation, and a national government, would prefer an alliance with England,
is a matter of certainty. Nations, like individuals, who have long been
enemies, without knowing each other, or knowing why, become the better friends
when they discover the errors and impositions under which they had acted.
Admitting,
therefore, the probability of such a connection, I will state some matters by
which such an alliance, together with that of Holland, might render service,
not only to the parties immediately concerned, but to all Europe.
It is, I
think, certain, that if the fleets of England, France, and Holland were
confederated, they could propose, with effect, a limitation to, and a general
dismantling of, all the navies in Europe, to a certain proportion to be agreed
upon.
First, That
no new ship of war shall be built by any power in Europe, themselves included.
Second,
That all the navies now in existence shall be put back, suppose to one-tenth of
their present force. This will save to France and England, at least two
millions sterling annually to each, and their relative force be in the same
proportion as it is now. If men will permit themselves to think, as rational
beings ought to think, nothing can appear more ridiculous and absurd, exclusive
of all moral reflections, than to be at the expense of building navies, filling
them with men, and then hauling them into the ocean, to try which can sink each
other fastest. Peace, which costs nothing, is attended with infinitely more
advantage, than any victory with all its expense. But this, though it best
answers the purpose of nations, does not that of court governments, whose
habited policy is pretence for taxation, places, and offices.
It is, I
think, also certain, that the above confederated powers, together with that of
the United States of America, can propose with effect, to Spain, the
independence of South America, and the opening those countries of immense
extent and wealth to the general commerce of the world, as North America now
is.
With how
much more glory, and advantage to itself, does a nation act, when it exerts its
powers to rescue the world from bondage, and to create itself friends, than
when it employs those powers to increase ruin, desolation, and misery. The
horrid scene that is now acting by the English government in the East-Indies,
is fit only to be told of Goths and Vandals, who, destitute of principle,
robbed and tortured the world they were incapable of enjoying.
The opening
of South America would produce an immense field of commerce, and a ready money
market for manufactures, which the eastern world does not. The East is already
a country full of manufactures, the importation of which is not only an injury
to the manufactures of England, but a drain upon its specie. The balance
against England by this trade is regularly upwards of half a million annually
sent out in the East-India ships in silver; and this is the reason, together
with German intrigue, and German subsidies, that there is so little silver in
England.
But any war
is harvest to such governments, however ruinous it may be to a nation. It
serves to keep up deceitful expectations which prevent people from looking into
the defects and abuses of government. It is the lo here! and the lo there! that
amuses and cheats the multitude.
Never did
so great an opportunity offer itself to England, and to all Europe, as is
produced by the two Revolutions of America and France. By the former, freedom
has a national champion in the western world; and by the latter, in Europe.
When another nation shall join France, despotism and bad government will
scarcely dare to appear. To use a trite expression, the iron is becoming hot
all over Europe. The insulted German and the enslaved Spaniard, the Russ and
the Pole, are beginning to think. The present age will hereafter merit to be
called the Age of Reason, and the present generation will appear to the future
as the Adam of a new world.
When all
the governments of Europe shall be established on the representative system,
nations will become acquainted, and the animosities and prejudices fomented by
the intrigue and artifice of courts, will cease. The oppressed soldier will
become a freeman; and the tortured sailor, no longer dragged through the
streets like a felon, will pursue his mercantile voyage in safety. It would be
better that nations should wi continue the pay of their soldiers during their
lives, and give them their discharge and restore them to freedom and their
friends, and cease recruiting, than retain such multitudes at the same expense,
in a condition useless to society and to themselves. As soldiers have hitherto
been treated in most countries, they might be said to be without a friend.
Shunned by the citizen on an apprehension of their being enemies to liberty,
and too often insulted by those who commanded them, their condition was a
double oppression. But where genuine principles of liberty pervade a people,
every thing is restored to order; and the soldier civilly treated, returns the
civility.
In
contemplating revolutions, it is easy to perceive that they may arise from two
distinct causes; the one, to avoid or get rid of some great calamity; the
other, to obtain some great and positive good; and the two may be distinguished
by the names of active and passive revolutions. In those which proceed from the
former cause, the temper becomes incensed and soured; and the redress, obtained
by danger, is too often sullied by revenge. But in those which proceed from the
latter, the heart, rather animated than agitated, enters serenely upon the
subject. Reason and discussion, persuasion and conviction, become the weapons
in the contest, and it is only when those are attempted to be suppressed that
recourse is had to violence. When men unite in agreeing that a thing is good,
could it be obtained, such for instance as relief from a burden of taxes and
the extinction of corruption, the object is more than half accomplished. What
they approve as the end, they will promote in the means.
Will any
man say, in the present excess of taxation, falling so heavily on the poor,
that a remission of five pounds annually of taxes to one hundred and four thousand
poor families is not a good thing? Will he say that a remission of seven pounds
annually to one hundred thousand other poor families- of eight pounds annually
to another hundred thousand poor families, and of ten pounds annually to fifty
thousand poor and widowed families, are not good things? And, to proceed a step
further in this climax, will he say that to provide against the misfortunes to
which all human life is subject, by securing six pounds annually for all poor,
distressed, and reduced persons of the age of fifty and until sixty, and of ten
pounds annually after sixty, is not a good thing?
Will he say
that an abolition of two millions of poor-rates to the house-keepers, and of
the whole of the house and window-light tax and of the commutation tax is not a
good thing? Or will he say that to abolish corruption is a bad thing?
If,
therefore, the good to be obtained be worthy of a passive, rational, and
costless revolution, it would be bad policy to prefer waiting for a calamity
that should force a violent one. I have no idea, considering the reforms which
are now passing and spreading throughout Europe, that England will permit
herself to be the last; and where the occasion and the opportunity quietly
offer, it is better than to wait for a turbulent necessity. It may be
considered as an honour to the animal faculties of man to obtain redress by
courage and danger, but it is far greater honour to the rational faculties to
accomplish the same object by reason, accommodation, and general consent.*[40]
As reforms,
or revolutions, call them which you please, extend themselves among nations,
those nations will form connections and conventions, and when a few are thus
confederated, the progress will be rapid, till despotism and corrupt government
be totally expelled, at least out of two quarters of the world, Europe and
America. The Algerine piracy may then be commanded to cease, for it is only by
the malicious policy of old governments, against each other, that it exists.
Throughout
this work, various and numerous as the subjects are, which I have taken up and
investigated, there is only a single paragraph upon religion, viz. "that
every religion is good that teaches man to be good."
I have
carefully avoided to enlarge upon the subject, because I am inclined to believe
that what is called the present ministry, wish to see contentions about
religion kept up, to prevent the nation turning its attention to subjects of
government. It is as if they were to say, "Look that way, or any way, but
this."
But as religion
is very improperly made a political machine, and the reality of it is thereby
destroyed, I will conclude this work with stating in what light religion
appears to me.
If we
suppose a large family of children, who, on any particular day, or particular
circumstance, made it a custom to present to their parents some token of their
affection and gratitude, each of them would make a different offering, and most
probably in a different manner. Some would pay their congratulations in themes
of verse and prose, by some little devices, as their genius dictated, or
according to what they thought would please; and, perhaps, the least of all,
not able to do any of those things, would ramble into the garden, or the field,
and gather what it thought the prettiest flower it could find, though, perhaps,
it might be but a simple weed. The parent would be more gratified by such a
variety, than if the whole of them had acted on a concerted plan, and each had
made exactly the same offering. This would have the cold appearance of
contrivance, or the harsh one of control. But of all unwelcome things, nothing
could more afflict the parent than to know, that the whole of them had
afterwards gotten together by the ears, boys and girls, fighting, scratching,
reviling, and abusing each other about which was the best or the worst present.
Why may we
not suppose, that the great Father of all is pleased with variety of devotion;
and that the greatest offence we can act, is that by which we seek to torment
and render each other miserable? For my own part, I am fully satisfied that
what I am now doing, with an endeavour to conciliate mankind, to render their
condition happy, to unite nations that have hitherto been enemies, and to
extirpate the horrid practice of war, and break the chains of slavery and
oppression is acceptable in his sight, and being the best service I can
perform, I act it cheerfully.
I do not
believe that any two men, on what are called doctrinal points, think alike who
think at all. It is only those who have not thought that appear to agree. It is
in this case as with what is called the British constitution. It has been taken
for granted to be good, and encomiums have supplied the place of proof. But
when the nation comes to examine into its principles and the abuses it admits,
it will be found to have more defects than I have pointed out in this work and
the former.
As to what
are called national religions, we may, with as much propriety, talk of national
Gods. It is either political craft or the remains of the Pagan system, when
every nation had its separate and particular deity. Among all the writers of
the English church clergy, who have treated on the general subject of religion,
the present Bishop of Llandaff has not been excelled, and it is with much pleasure
that I take this opportunity of expressing this token of respect.
I have now
gone through the whole of the subject, at least, as far as it appears to me at
present. It has been my intention for the five years I have been in Europe, to
offer an address to the people of England on the subject of government, if the
opportunity presented itself before I returned to America. Mr. Burke has thrown
it in my way, and I thank him. On a certain occasion, three years ago, I
pressed him to propose a national convention, to be fairly elected, for the
purpose of taking the state of the nation into consideration; but I found, that
however strongly the parliamentary current was then setting against the party
he acted with, their policy was to keep every thing within that field of
corruption, and trust to accidents. Long experience had shown that parliaments
would follow any change of ministers, and on this they rested their hopes and
their expectations.
Formerly,
when divisions arose respecting governments, recourse was had to the sword, and
a civil war ensued. That savage custom is exploded by the new system, and
reference is had to national conventions. Discussion and the general will
arbitrates the question, and to this, private opinion yields with a good grace,
and order is preserved uninterrupted.
Some
gentlemen have affected to call the principles upon which this work and the
former part of Rights of Man are founded, "a new-fangled doctrine."
The question is not whether those principles are new or old, but whether they
are right or wrong. Suppose the former, I will show their effect by a figure
easily understood.
It is now
towards the middle of February. Were I to take a turn into the country, the
trees would present a leafless, wintery appearance. As people are apt to pluck
twigs as they walk along, I perhaps might do the same, and by chance might
observe, that a single bud on that twig had begun to swell. I should reason
very unnaturally, or rather not reason at all, to suppose this was the only bud
in England which had this appearance. Instead of deciding thus, I should
instantly conclude, that the same appearance was beginning, or about to begin,
every where; and though the vegetable sleep will continue longer on some trees
and plants than on others, and though some of them may not blossom for two or
three years, all will be in leaf in the summer, except those which are rotten.
What pace the political summer may keep with the natural, no human foresight
can determine. It is, however, not difficult to perceive that the spring is
begun.- Thus wishing, as I sincerely do, freedom and happiness to all nations,
I close the SECOND PART.
Appendix
As the
publication of this work has been delayed beyond the time intended, I think it
not improper, all circumstances considered, to state the causes that have
occasioned delay.
The reader
will probably observe, that some parts in the plan contained in this work for
reducing the taxes, and certain parts in Mr. Pitt's speech at the opening of
the present session, Tuesday, January 31, are so much alike as to induce a
belief, that either the author had taken the hint from Mr. Pitt, or Mr. Pitt
from the author.- I will first point out the parts that are similar, and then
state such circumstances as I am acquainted with, leaving the reader to make
his own conclusion.
Considering
it as almost an unprecedented case, that taxes should be proposed to be taken
off, it is equally extraordinary that such a measure should occur to two
persons at the same time; and still more so (considering the vast variety and
multiplicity of taxes) that they should hit on the same specific taxes. Mr.
Pitt has mentioned, in his speech, the tax on Carts and Wagons- that on Female
Servants- the lowering the tax on Candles and the taking off the tax of three
shillings on Houses having under seven windows.
Every one
of those specific taxes are a part of the plan contained in this work, and
proposed also to be taken off. Mr. Pitt's plan, it is true, goes no further
than to a reduction of three hundred and twenty thousand pounds; and the
reduction proposed in this work, to nearly six millions. I have made my
calculations on only sixteen millions and an half of revenue, still asserting
that it was "very nearly, if not quite, seventeen millions." Mr. Pitt
states it at 16,690,000. I know enough of the matter to say, that he has not
overstated it. Having thus given the particulars, which correspond in this work
and his speech, I will state a chain of circumstances that may lead to some
explanation.
The first
hint for lessening the taxes, and that as a consequence flowing from the French
revolution, is to be found in the ADDRESS and DECLARATION of the Gentlemen who
met at the Thatched-House Tavern, August 20, 1791. Among many other particulars
stated in that Address, is the following, put as an interrogation to the
government opposers of the French Revolution. "Are they sorry that the
pretence for new oppressive taxes, and the occasion for continuing many old
taxes will be at an end?"
It is well
known that the persons who chiefly frequent the Thatched-House Tavern, are men
of court connections, and so much did they take this Address and Declaration
respecting the French Revolution, and the reduction of taxes in disgust, that
the Landlord was under the necessity of informing the Gentlemen, who composed
the meeting of the 20th of August, and who proposed holding another meeting,
that he could not receive them.*[41]
What was
only hinted in the Address and Declaration respecting taxes and principles of
government, will be found reduced to a regular system in this work. But as Mr.
Pitt's speech contains some of the same things respecting taxes, I now come to
give the circumstances before alluded to.
The case
is: This work was intended to be published just before the meeting of Parliament,
and for that purpose a considerable part of the copy was put into the printer's
hands in September, and all the remaining copy, which contains the part to
which Mr. Pitt's speech is similar, was given to him full six weeks before the
meeting of Parliament, and he was informed of the time at which it was to
appear. He had composed nearly the whole about a fortnight before the time of
Parliament meeting, and had given me a proof of the next sheet. It was then in
sufficient forwardness to be out at the time proposed, as two other sheets were
ready for striking off. I had before told him, that if he thought he should be
straitened for time, I could get part of the work done at another press, which
he desired me not to do. In this manner the work stood on the Tuesday fortnight
preceding the meeting of Parliament, when all at once, without any previous
intimation, though I had been with him the evening before, he sent me, by one
of his workmen, all the remaining copy, declining to go on with the work on any
consideration.
To account
for this extraordinary conduct I was totally at a loss, as he stopped at the
part where the arguments on systems and principles of government closed, and
where the plan for the reduction of taxes, the education of children, and the
support of the poor and the aged begins; and still more especially, as he had,
at the time of his beginning to print, and before he had seen the whole copy,
offered a thousand pounds for the copy-right, together with the future
copy-right of the former part of the Rights of Man. I told the person who
brought me this offer that I should not accept it, and wished it not to be
renewed, giving him as my reason, that though I believed the printer to be an
honest man, I would never put it in the power of any printer or publisher to
suppress or alter a work of mine, by making him master of the copy, or give to
him the right of selling it to any minister, or to any other person, or to
treat as a mere matter of traffic, that which I intended should operate as a
principle.
His refusal
to complete the work (which he could not purchase) obliged me to seek for
another printer, and this of consequence would throw the publication back till
after the meeting of Parliament, otherways it would have appeared that Mr. Pitt
had only taken up a part of the plan which I had more fully stated.
Whether
that gentleman, or any other, had seen the work, or any part of it, is more
than I have authority to say. But the manner in which the work was returned,
and the particular time at which this was done, and that after the offers he
had made, are suspicious circumstances. I know what the opinion of booksellers
and publishers is upon such a case, but as to my own opinion, I choose to make
no declaration. There are many ways by which proof sheets may be procured by
other persons before a work publicly appears; to which I shall add a certain
circumstance, which is,
A
ministerial bookseller in Piccadilly who has been employed, as common report
says, by a clerk of one of the boards closely connected with the ministry (the
board of trade and plantation, of which Hawkesbury is president) to publish
what he calls my Life, (I wish his own life and those of the cabinet were as
good), used to have his books printed at the same printing-office that I
employed; but when the former part of Rights of Man came out, he took his work
away in dudgeon; and about a week or ten days before the printer returned my
copy, he came to make him an offer of his work again, which was accepted. This
would consequently give him admission into the printing-office where the sheets
of this work were then lying; and as booksellers and printers are free with
each other, he would have the opportunity of seeing what was going on.- Be the
case, however, as it may, Mr. Pitt's plan, little and diminutive as it is,
would have made a very awkward appearance, had this work appeared at the time
the printer had engaged to finish it.
I have now
stated the particulars which occasioned the delay, from the proposal to
purchase, to the refusal to print. If all the Gentlemen are innocent, it is
very unfortunate for them that such a variety of suspicious circumstances
should, without any design, arrange themselves together.
Having now
finished this part, I will conclude with stating another circumstance.
About a
fortnight or three weeks before the meeting of Parliament, a small addition,
amounting to about twelve shillings and sixpence a year, was made to the pay of
the soldiers, or rather their pay was docked so much less. Some Gentlemen who
knew, in part, that this work would contain a plan of reforms respecting the
oppressed condition of soldiers, wished me to add a note to the work,
signifying that the part upon that subject had been in the printer's hands some
weeks before that addition of pay was proposed. I declined doing this, lest it
should be interpreted into an air of vanity, or an endeavour to excite
suspicion (for which perhaps there might be no grounds) that some of the
government gentlemen had, by some means or other, made out what this work would
contain: and had not the printing been interrupted so as to occasion a delay
beyond the time fixed for publication, nothing contained in this appendix would
have appeared.
THOMAS PAINE AUTHORS NOTES
The Author's Notes
FOR PART ONE AND PART TWO
1. The main
and uniform maxim of the judges is, the greater the truth the greater the
libel.
2. Since
writing the above, two other places occur in Mr. Burke's pamphlet in which the name
of the Bastille is mentioned, but in the same manner. In the one he introduces
it in a sort of obscure question, and asks: "Will any ministers who now
serve such a king, with but a decent appearance of respect, cordially obey the
orders of those whom but the other day, in his name, they had committed to the
Bastille?" In the other the taking it is mentioned as implying criminality
in the French guards, who assisted in demolishing it. "They have
not," says he, "forgot the taking the king's castles at Paris."
This is Mr. Burke, who pretends to write on constitutional freedom.
3. I am
warranted in asserting this, as I had it personally from M. de la Fayette, with
whom I lived in habits of friendship for fourteen years.
4. An
account of the expedition to Versailles may be seen in No. 13 of the Revolution
de Paris containing the events from the 3rd to the 10th of October, 1789.
5. It is a
practice in some parts of the country, when two travellers have but one horse,
which, like the national purse, will not carry double, that the one mounts and
rides two or three miles ahead, and then ties the horse to a gate and walks on.
When the second traveller arrives he takes the horse, rides on, and passes his
companion a mile or two, and ties again, and so on- Ride and tie.
6. The word
he used was renvoye, dismissed or sent away.
7. When in
any country we see extraordinary circumstances taking place, they naturally
lead any man who has a talent for observation and investigation, to enquire
into the causes. The manufacturers of Manchester, Birmingham, and Sheffield,
are the principal manufacturers in England. From whence did this arise? A
little observation will explain the case. The principal, and the generality of
the inhabitants of those places, are not of what is called in England, the
church established by law: and they, or their fathers, (for it is within but a
few years) withdrew from the persecution of the chartered towns, where
test-laws more particularly operate, and established a sort of asylum for
themselves in those places. It was the only asylum that then offered, for the
rest of Europe was worse.- But the case is now changing. France and America bid
all comers welcome, and initiate them into all the rights of citizenship.
Policy and interest, therefore, will, but perhaps too late, dictate in England,
what reason and justice could not. Those manufacturers are withdrawing, and
arising in other places. There is now erecting in Passey, three miles from
Paris, a large cotton manufactory, and several are already erected in America.
Soon after the rejecting the Bill for repealing the test-law, one of the
richest manufacturers in England said in my hearing, "England, Sir, is not
a country for a dissenter to live in,- we must go to France." These are
truths, and it is doing justice to both parties to tell them. It is chiefly the
dissenters that have carried English manufactures to the height they are now
at, and the same men have it in their power to carry them away; and though
those manufactures would afterwards continue in those places, the foreign
market will be lost. There frequently appear in the London Gazette, extracts
from certain acts to prevent machines and persons, as far as they can extend to
persons, from going out of the country. It appears from these that the ill
effects of the test-laws and church-establishment begin to be much suspected;
but the remedy of force can never supply the remedy of reason. In the progress
of less than a century, all the unrepresented part of England, of all
denominations, which is at least an hundred times the most numerous, may begin
to feel the necessity of a constitution, and then all those matters will come
regularly before them.
8. When the
English Minister, Mr. Pitt, mentions the French finances again in the English
Parliament, it would be well that he noticed this as an example.
9. Mr.
Burke, (and I must take the liberty of telling him that he is very unacquainted
with French affairs), speaking upon this subject, says, "The first thing
that struck me in calling the States-General, was a great departure from the
ancient course";- and he soon after says, "From the moment I read the
list, I saw distinctly, and very nearly as it has happened, all that was to
follow."- Mr. Burke certainly did not see an that was to follow. I
endeavoured to impress him, as well before as after the States-General met,
that there would be a revolution; but was not able to make him see it, neither
would he believe it. How then he could distinctly see all the parts, when the
whole was out of sight, is beyond my comprehension. And with respect to the
"departure from the ancient course," besides the natural weakness of
the remark, it shows that he is unacquainted with circumstances. The departure
was necessary, from the experience had upon it, that the ancient course was a
bad one. The States-General of 1614 were called at the commencement of the
civil war in the minority of Louis XIII.; but by the class of arranging them by
orders, they increased the confusion they were called to compose. The author of
L'Intrigue du Cabinet, (Intrigue of the Cabinet), who wrote before any
revolution was thought of in France, speaking of the States-General of 1614,
says, "They held the public in suspense five months; and by the questions
agitated therein, and the heat with which they were put, it appears that the
great (les grands) thought more to satisfy their particular passions, than to
procure the goods of the nation; and the whole time passed away in
altercations, ceremonies and parade."- L'Intrigue du Cabinet, vol. i. p.
329.
10. There
is a single idea, which, if it strikes rightly upon the mind, either in a legal
or a religious sense, will prevent any man or any body of men, or any
government, from going wrong on the subject of religion; which is, that before
any human institutions of government were known in the world, there existed, if
I may so express it, a compact between God and man, from the beginning of time:
and that as the relation and condition which man in his individual person
stands in towards his Maker cannot be changed by any human laws or human
authority, that religious devotion, which is a part of this compact, cannot so
much as be made a subject of human laws; and that all laws must conform
themselves to this prior existing compact, and not assume to make the compact
conform to the laws, which, besides being human, are subsequent thereto. The
first act of man, when he looked around and saw himself a creature which he did
not make, and a world furnished for his reception, must have been devotion; and
devotion must ever continue sacred to every individual man, as it appears,
right to him; and governments do mischief by interfering.
11. See
this work, Part I starting at line number 254.- N.B. Since the taking of the
Bastille, the occurrences have been published: but the matters recorded in this
narrative, are prior to that period; and some of them, as may be easily seen,
can be but very little known.
12. See
"Estimate of the Comparative Strength of Great Britain," by G.
Chalmers.
13. See
"Administration of the Finances of France," vol. iii, by M. Neckar.
14.
"Administration of the Finances of France," vol. iii.
15. Whether
the English commerce does not bring in money, or whether the government sends
it out after it is brought in, is a matter which the parties concerned can best
explain; but that the deficiency exists, is not in the power of either to
disprove. While Dr. Price, Mr. Eden, (now Auckland), Mr. Chalmers, and others,
were debating whether the quantity of money in England was greater or less than
at the Revolution, the circumstance was not adverted to, that since the
Revolution, there cannot have been less than four hundred millions sterling
imported into Europe; and therefore the quantity in England ought at least to
have been four times greater than it was at the Revolution, to be on a
proportion with Europe. What England is now doing by paper, is what she would
have been able to do by solid money, if gold and silver had come into the
nation in the proportion it ought, or had not been sent out; and she is
endeavouring to restore by paper, the balance she has lost by money. It is
certain, that the gold and silver which arrive annually in the register-ships
to Spain and Portugal, do not remain in those countries. Taking the value half
in gold and half in silver, it is about four hundred tons annually; and from
the number of ships and galloons employed in the trade of bringing those metals
from South-America to Portugal and Spain, the quantity sufficiently proves
itself, without referring to the registers.
In the
situation England now is, it is impossible she can increase in money. High
taxes not only lessen the property of the individuals, but they lessen also the
money capital of the nation, by inducing smuggling, which can only be carried
on by gold and silver. By the politics which the British Government have
carried on with the Inland Powers of Germany and the Continent, it has made an
enemy of all the Maritime Powers, and is therefore obliged to keep up a large
navy; but though the navy is built in England, the naval stores must be
purchased from abroad, and that from countries where the greatest part must be
paid for in gold and silver. Some fallacious rumours have been set afloat in
England to induce a belief in money, and, among others, that of the French
refugees bringing great quantities. The idea is ridiculous. The general part of
the money in France is silver; and it would take upwards of twenty of the
largest broad wheel wagons, with ten horses each, to remove one million
sterling of silver. Is it then to be supposed, that a few people fleeing on
horse-back or in post-chaises, in a secret manner, and having the French
Custom-House to pass, and the sea to cross, could bring even a sufficiency for
their own expenses?
When
millions of money are spoken of, it should be recollected, that such sums can
only accumulate in a country by slow degrees, and a long procession of time.
The most frugal system that England could now adopt, would not recover in a
century the balance she has lost in money since the commencement of the Hanover
succession. She is seventy millions behind France, and she must be in some
considerable proportion behind every country in Europe, because the returns of
the English mint do not show an increase of money, while the registers of
Lisbon and Cadiz show an European increase of between three and four hundred
millions sterling.
16. That
part of America which is generally called New-England, including New-Hampshire,
Massachusetts, Rhode-Island, and Connecticut, is peopled chiefly by English
descendants. In the state of New-York about half are Dutch, the rest English,
Scotch, and Irish. In New-jersey, a mixture of English and Dutch, with some
Scotch and Irish. In Pennsylvania about one third are English, another Germans,
and the remainder Scotch and Irish, with some Swedes. The States to the
southward have a greater proportion of English than the middle States, but in
all of them there is a mixture; and besides those enumerated, there are a
considerable number of French, and some few of all the European nations, lying
on the coast. The most numerous religious denomination are the Presbyterians;
but no one sect is established above another, and all men are equally citizens.
17. For a
character of aristocracy, the reader is referred to Rights of Man, Part I.,
starting at line number 1457.
18. The
whole amount of the assessed taxes of France, for the present year, is three
hundred millions of francs, which is twelve millions and a half sterling; and
the incidental taxes are estimated at three millions, making in the whole
fifteen millions and a half; which among twenty-four millions of people, is not
quite thirteen shillings per head. France has lessened her taxes since the
revolution, nearly nine millions sterling annually. Before the revolution, the
city of Paris paid a duty of upwards of thirty per cent. on all articles
brought into the city. This tax was collected at the city gates. It was taken
off on the first of last May, and the gates taken down.
19. What
was called the livre rouge, or the red book, in France, was not exactly similar
to the Court Calendar in England; but it sufficiently showed how a great part
of the taxes was lavished.
20. In
England the improvements in agriculture, useful arts, manufactures, and commerce,
have been made in opposition to the genius of its government, which is that of
following precedents. It is from the enterprise and industry of the
individuals, and their numerous associations, in which, tritely speaking,
government is neither pillow nor bolster, that these improvements have
proceeded. No man thought about government, or who was in, or who was out, when
he was planning or executing those things; and all he had to hope, with respect
to government, was, that it would let him alone. Three or four very silly
ministerial newspapers are continually offending against the spirit of national
improvement, by ascribing it to a minister. They may with as much truth ascribe
this book to a minister.
21. With
respect to the two houses, of which the English parliament is composed, they
appear to be effectually influenced into one, and, as a legislature, to have no
temper of its own. The minister, whoever he at any time may be, touches it as
with an opium wand, and it sleeps obedience.
But if we
look at the distinct abilities of the two houses, the difference will appear so
great, as to show the inconsistency of placing power where there can be no
certainty of the judgment to use it. Wretched as the state of representation is
in England, it is manhood compared with what is called the house of Lords; and
so little is this nick-named house regarded, that the people scarcely enquire
at any time what it is doing. It appears also to be most under influence, and
the furthest removed from the general interest of the nation. In the debate on
engaging in the Russian and Turkish war, the majority in the house of peers in
favor of it was upwards of ninety, when in the other house, which was more than
double its numbers, the majority was sixty-three.
The
proceedings on Mr. Fox's bill, respecting the rights of juries, merits also to
be noticed. The persons called the peers were not the objects of that bill.
They are already in possession of more privileges than that bill gave to
others. They are their own jury, and if any one of that house were prosecuted
for a libel, he would not suffer, even upon conviction, for the first offense.
Such inequality in laws ought not to exist in any country. The French
constitution says, that the law is the same to every individual, whether to
Protect or to punish. All are equal in its sight.
22. As to
the state of representation in England, it is too absurd to be reasoned upon.
Almost all the represented parts are decreasing in population, and the
unrepresented parts are increasing. A general convention of the nation is
necessary to take the whole form of government into consideration.
23. It is
related that in the canton of Berne, in Switzerland, it has been customary,
from time immemorial, to keep a bear at the public expense, and the people had
been taught to believe that if they had not a bear they should all be undone.
It happened some years ago that the bear, then in being, was taken sick, and
died too suddenly to have his place immediately supplied with another. During
this interregnum the people discovered that the corn grew, and the vintage
flourished, and the sun and moon continued to rise and set, and everything went
on the same as before, and taking courage from these circumstances, they
resolved not to keep any more bears; for, said they, "a bear is a very
voracious expensive animal, and we were obliged to pull out his claws, lest he
should hurt the citizens." The story of the bear of Berne was related in
some of the French newspapers, at the time of the flight of Louis XVI., and the
application of it to monarchy could not be mistaken in France; but it seems
that the aristocracy of Berne applied it to themselves, and have since
prohibited the reading of French newspapers.
24. It is
scarcely possible to touch on any subject, that will not suggest an allusion to
some corruption in governments. The simile of "fortifications,"
unfortunately involves with it a circumstance, which is directly in point with
the matter above alluded to.
Among the
numerous instances of abuse which have been acted or protected by governments,
ancient or modern, there is not a greater than that of quartering a man and his
heirs upon the public, to be maintained at its expense.
Humanity
dictates a provision for the poor; but by what right, moral or political, does
any government assume to say, that the person called the Duke of Richmond,
shall be maintained by the public? Yet, if common report is true, not a beggar
in London can purchase his wretched pittance of coal, without paying towards
the civil list of the Duke of Richmond. Were the whole produce of this
imposition but a shilling a year, the iniquitous principle would be still the
same; but when it amounts, as it is said to do, to no less than twenty thousand
pounds per annum, the enormity is too serious to be permitted to remain. This
is one of the effects of monarchy and aristocracy.
In stating
this case I am led by no personal dislike. Though I think it mean in any man to
live upon the public, the vice originates in the government; and so general is it
become, that whether the parties are in the ministry or in the opposition, it
makes no difference: they are sure of the guarantee of each other.
25. In
America the increase of commerce is greater in proportion than in England. It
is, at this time, at least one half more than at any period prior to the
revolution. The greatest number of vessels cleared out of the port of
Philadelphia, before the commencement of the war, was between eight and nine
hundred. In the year 1788, the number was upwards of twelve hundred. As the
State of Pennsylvania is estimated at an eighth part of the United States in
population, the whole number of vessels must now be nearly ten thousand.
26. When I
saw Mr. Pitt's mode of estimating the balance of trade, in one of his parliamentary
speeches, he appeared to me to know nothing of the nature and interest of
commerce; and no man has more wantonly tortured it than himself. During a
period of peace it has been havocked with the calamities of war. Three times
has it been thrown into stagnation, and the vessels unmanned by impressing,
within less than four years of peace.
27. Rev.
William Knowle, master of the grammar school of Thetford, in Norfolk.
28.
Politics and self-interest have been so uniformly connected that the world,
from being so often deceived, has a right to be suspicious of public
characters, but with regard to myself I am perfectly easy on this head. I did
not, at my first setting out in public life, nearly seventeen years ago, turn
my thoughts to subjects of government from motives of interest, and my conduct
from that moment to this proves the fact. I saw an opportunity in which I
thought I could do some good, and I followed exactly what my heart dictated. I
neither read books, nor studied other people's opinion. I thought for myself.
The case was this:-
During the
suspension of the old governments in America, both prior to and at the breaking
out of hostilities, I was struck with the order and decorum with which
everything was conducted, and impressed with the idea that a little more than
what society naturally performed was all the government that was necessary, and
that monarchy and aristocracy were frauds and impositions upon mankind. On
these principles I published the pamphlet Common Sense. The success it met with
was beyond anything since the invention of printing. I gave the copyright to
every state in the Union, and the demand ran to not less than one hundred
thousand copies. I continued the subject in the same manner, under the title of
The Crisis, till the complete establishment of the Revolution.
After the
declaration of independence Congress unanimously, and unknown to me, appointed
me Secretary in the Foreign Department. This was agreeable to me, because it
gave me the opportunity of seeing into the abilities of foreign courts, and
their manner of doing business. But a misunderstanding arising between Congress
and me, respecting one of their commissioners then in Europe, Mr. Silas Deane,
I resigned the office, and declined at the same time the pecuniary offers made
by the Ministers of France and Spain, M. Gerald and Don Juan Mirralles.
I had by
this time so completely gained the ear and confidence of America, and my own
independence was become so visible, as to give me a range in political writing
beyond, perhaps, what any man ever possessed in any country, and, what is more
extraordinary, I held it undiminished to the end of the war, and enjoy it in
the same manner to the present moment. As my object was not myself, I set out
with the determination, and happily with the disposition, of not being moved by
praise or censure, friendship or calumny, nor of being drawn from my purpose by
any personal altercation, and the man who cannot do this is not fit for a
public character.
When the
war ended I went from Philadelphia to Borden-Town, on the east bank of the
Delaware, where I have a small place. Congress was at this time at Prince-Town,
fifteen miles distant, and General Washington had taken his headquarters at
Rocky Hill, within the neighbourhood of Congress, for the purpose of resigning
up his commission (the object for which he accepted it being accomplished), and
of retiring to private life. While he was on this business he wrote me the
letter which I here subjoin:
"Rocky-Hill,
Sept. 10, 1783.
"I
have learned since I have been at this place that you are at Borden-Town.
Whether for the sake of retirement or economy I know not. Be it for either, for
both, or whatever it may, if you will come to this place, and partake with me,
I shall be exceedingly happy to see you at it.
"Your
presence may remind Congress of your past services to this country, and if it
is in my power to impress them, command my best exertions with freedom, as they
will be rendered cheerfully by one who entertains a lively sense of the importance
of your works, and who, with much pleasure, subscribes himself, Your sincere
friend,
G.
WASHINGTON."
During the
war, in the latter end of the year 1780, I formed to myself a design of coming
over to England, and communicated it to General Greene, who was then in
Philadelphia on his route to the southward, General Washington being then at
too great a distance to communicate with immediately. I was strongly impressed
with the idea that if I could get over to England without being known, and only
remain in safety till I could get out a publication, that I could open the eyes
of the country with respect to the madness and stupidity of its Government. I
saw that the parties in Parliament had pitted themselves as far as they could
go, and could make no new impressions on each other. General Greene entered
fully into my views, but the affair of Arnold and Andre happening just after,
he changed his mind, under strong apprehensions for my safety, wrote very
pressingly to me from Annapolis, in Maryland, to give up the design, which,
with some reluctance, I did. Soon after this I accompanied Colonel Lawrens, son
of Mr. Lawrens, who was then in the Tower, to France on business from Congress.
We landed at L'Orient, and while I remained there, he being gone forward, a
circumstance occurred that renewed my former design. An English packet from
Falmouth to New York, with the Government dispatches on board, was brought into
L'Orient. That a packet should be taken is no extraordinary thing, but that the
dispatches should be taken with it will scarcely be credited, as they are
always slung at the cabin window in a bag loaded with cannon-ball, and ready to
be sunk at a moment. The fact, however, is as I have stated it, for the
dispatches came into my hands, and I read them. The capture, as I was informed,
succeeded by the following stratagem:- The captain of the "Madame"
privateer, who spoke English, on coming up with the packet, passed himself for
the captain of an English frigate, and invited the captain of the packet on
board, which, when done, he sent some of his own hands back, and he secured the
mail. But be the circumstance of the capture what it may, I speak with
certainty as to the Government dispatches. They were sent up to Paris to Count
Vergennes, and when Colonel Lawrens and myself returned to America we took the
originals to Congress.
By these
dispatches I saw into the stupidity of the English Cabinet far more than I
otherwise could have done, and I renewed my former design. But Colonel Lawrens
was so unwilling to return alone, more especially as, among other matters, we
had a charge of upwards of two hundred thousand pounds sterling in money, that
I gave in to his wishes, and finally gave up my plan. But I am now certain that
if I could have executed it that it would not have been altogether
unsuccessful.
29. It is
difficult to account for the origin of charter and corporation towns, unless we
suppose them to have arisen out of, or been connected with, some species of
garrison service. The times in which they began justify this idea. The
generality of those towns have been garrisons, and the corporations were
charged with the care of the gates of the towns, when no military garrison was
present. Their refusing or granting admission to strangers, which has produced
the custom of giving, selling, and buying freedom, has more of the nature of
garrison authority than civil government. Soldiers are free of all corporations
throughout the nation, by the same propriety that every soldier is free of
every garrison, and no other persons are. He can follow any employment, with
the permission of his officers, in any corporation towns throughout the nation.
30. See Sir
John Sinclair's History of the Revenue. The land-tax in 1646 was L2,473,499.
31. Several
of the court newspapers have of late made frequent mention of Wat Tyler. That
his memory should be traduced by court sycophants and an those who live on the
spoil of a public is not to be wondered at. He was, however, the means of
checking the rage and injustice of taxation in his time, and the nation owed
much to his valour. The history is concisely this:- In the time of Richard II.
a poll tax was levied of one shilling per head upon every person in the nation
of whatever estate or condition, on poor as well as rich, above the age of
fifteen years. If any favour was shown in the law it was to the rich rather
than to the poor, as no person could be charged more than twenty shillings for
himself, family and servants, though ever so numerous; while all other
families, under the number of twenty were charged per head. Poll taxes had
always been odious, but this being also oppressive and unjust, it excited as it
naturally must, universal detestation among the poor and middle classes. The
person known by the name of Wat Tyler, whose proper name was Walter, and a
tiler by trade, lived at Deptford. The gatherer of the poll tax, on coming to
his house, demanded tax for one of his daughters, whom Tyler declared was under
the age of fifteen. The tax-gatherer insisted on satisfying himself, and began
an indecent examination of the girl, which, enraging the father, he struck him
with a hammer that brought him to the ground, and was the cause of his death.
This circumstance served to bring the discontent to an issue. The inhabitants
of the neighbourhood espoused the cause of Tyler, who in a few days was joined,
according to some histories, by upwards of fifty thousand men, and chosen their
chief. With this force he marched to London, to demand an abolition of the tax
and a redress of other grievances. The Court, finding itself in a forlorn
condition, and, unable to make resistance, agreed, with Richard at its head, to
hold a conference with Tyler in Smithfield, making many fair professions,
courtier-like, of its dispositions to redress the oppressions. While Richard
and Tyler were in conversation on these matters, each being on horseback,
Walworth, then Mayor of London, and one of the creatures of the Court, watched
an opportunity, and like a cowardly assassin, stabbed Tyler with a dagger, and
two or three others falling upon him, he was instantly sacrificed. Tyler
appears to have been an intrepid disinterested man with respect to himself. All
his proposals made to Richard were on a more just and public ground than those
which had been made to John by the Barons, and notwithstanding the sycophancy
of historians and men like Mr. Burke, who seek to gloss over a base action of
the Court by traducing Tyler, his fame will outlive their falsehood. If the
Barons merited a monument to be erected at Runnymede, Tyler merited one in
Smithfield.
32. I
happened to be in England at the celebration of the centenary of the Revolution
of 1688. The characters of William and Mary have always appeared to be
detestable; the one seeking to destroy his uncle, and the other her father, to
get possession of power themselves; yet, as the nation was disposed to think
something of that event, I felt hurt at seeing it ascribe the whole reputation
of it to a man who had undertaken it as a job and who, besides what he otherwise
got, charged six hundred thousand pounds for the expense of the fleet that
brought him from Holland. George the First acted the same close-fisted part as
William had done, and bought the Duchy of Bremen with the money he got from
England, two hundred and fifty thousand pounds over and above his pay as king,
and having thus purchased it at the expense of England, added it to his
Hanoverian dominions for his own private profit. In fact, every nation that
does not govern itself is governed as a job. England has been the prey of jobs
ever since the Revolution.
33.
Charles, like his predecessors and successors, finding that war was the harvest
of governments, engaged in a war with the Dutch, the expense of which increased
the annual expenditure to L1,800,000 as stated under the date of 1666; but the
peace establishment was but L1,200,000.
34.
Poor-rates began about the time of Henry VIII., when the taxes began to
increase, and they have increased as the taxes increased ever since.
35.
Reckoning the taxes by families, five to a family, each family pays on an
average L12 7s. 6d. per annum. To this sum are to be added the poor-rates.
Though all pay taxes in the articles they consume, all do not pay poor-rates.
About two millions are exempted- some as not being house-keepers, others as not
being able, and the poor themselves who receive the relief. The average,
therefore, of poor-rates on the remaining number, is forty shillings for every
family of five persons, which make the whole average amount of taxes and rates
L14 17s. 6d. For six persons L17 17s. For seven persons L2O 16s. 6d.
The average
of taxes in America, under the new or representative system of government,
including the interest of the debt contracted in the war, and taking the
population at four millions of souls, which it now amounts to, and it is daily
increasing, is five shillings per head, men, women, and children. The
difference, therefore, between the two governments is as under:
|
|
England |
America |
|
|
L s.
d. |
L s.
d. |
|
For a family of five persons |
14 17
6 |
1 5
0 |
|
For a family of six persons |
17 17
0 |
1 10
0 |
|
For a family of seven persons |
20 16
6 |
1 15
0 |
36. Public schools
do not answer the general purpose of the poor. They are chiefly in corporation
towns from which the country towns and villages are excluded, or, if admitted,
the distance occasions a great loss of time. Education, to be useful to the
poor, should be on the spot, and the best method, I believe, to accomplish this
is to enable the parents to pay the expenses themselves. There are always
persons of both sexes to be found in every village, especially when growing
into years, capable of such an undertaking. Twenty children at ten shillings
each (and that not more than six months each year) would be as much as some
livings amount to in the remotest parts of England, and there are often
distressed clergymen's widows to whom such an income would be acceptable.
Whatever is given on this account to children answers two purposes. To them it
is education- to those who educate them it is a livelihood.
37. The tax
on beer brewed for sale, from which the aristocracy are exempt, is almost one
million more than the present commutation tax, being by the returns of 1788,
L1,666,152- and, consequently, they ought to take on themselves the amount of
the commutation tax, as they are already exempted from one which is almost a
million greater.
38. See the
Reports on the Corn Trade.
39. When
enquiries are made into the condition of the poor, various degrees of distress
will most probably be found, to render a different arrangement preferable to
that which is already proposed. Widows with families will be in greater want
than where there are husbands living. There is also a difference in the expense
of living in different counties: and more so in fuel.
Suppose
then fifty thousand extraordinary cases, at
the rate of
ten pounds per family per annum
L500,000
100,000 families, at L8 per family per annum 800,000
100,000 families, at L7 per family per annum 700,000
104,000 families, at L5 per family per annum 520,000
And instead
of ten shillings per head for the education
of other children, to allow fifty shillings per family
for that purpose to fifty thousand families 250,000
--------------
L2,770,000
140,000
aged persons as before 1,120,000
--------------
L3,890,000
This
arrangement amounts to the same sum as stated in this work, Part II, line
number 1068, including the L250,000 for education; but it provides (including
the aged people) for four hundred and four thousand families, which is almost
one third of an the families in England.
40. I know
it is the opinion of many of the most enlightened characters in France (there
always will be those who see further into events than others), not only among
the general mass of citizens, but of many of the principal members of the
former National Assembly, that the monarchical plan will not continue many
years in that country. They have found out, that as wisdom cannot be made
hereditary, power ought not; and that, for a man to merit a million sterling a
year from a nation, he ought to have a mind capable of comprehending from an
atom to a universe, which, if he had, he would be above receiving the pay. But
they wished not to appear to lead the nation faster than its own reason and
interest dictated. In all the conversations where I have been present upon this
subject, the idea always was, that when such a time, from the general opinion
of the nation, shall arrive, that the honourable and liberal method would be,
to make a handsome present in fee simple to the person, whoever he may be, that
shall then be in the monarchical office, and for him to retire to the enjoyment
of private life, possessing his share of general rights and privileges, and to
be no more accountable to the public for his time and his conduct than any
other citizen.
41. The
gentleman who signed the address and declaration as chairman of the meeting,
Mr. Horne Tooke, being generally supposed to be the person who drew it up, and
having spoken much in commendation of it, has been jocularly accused of praising
his own work. To free him from this embarrassment, and to save him the repeated
trouble of mentioning the author, as he has not failed to do, I make no
hesitation in saying, that as the opportunity of benefiting by the French
Revolution easily occurred to me, I drew up the publication in question, and
showed it to him and some other gentlemen, who, fully approving it, held a
meeting for the purpose of making it public, and subscribed to the amount of
fifty guineas to defray the expense of advertising. I believe there are at this
time, in England, a greater number of men acting on disinterested principles,
and determined to look into the nature and practices of government themselves,
and not blindly trust, as has hitherto been the case, either to government
generally, or to parliaments, or to parliamentary opposition, than at any
former period. Had this been done a century ago, corruption and taxation had
not arrived to the height they are now at.